summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/5343-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to '5343-h')
-rw-r--r--5343-h/5343-h.htm~12839
-rw-r--r--5343-h/images/cover.jpg~bin294344 -> 0 bytes
2 files changed, 0 insertions, 12839 deletions
diff --git a/5343-h/5343-h.htm~ b/5343-h/5343-h.htm~
deleted file mode 100644
index c78571d..0000000
--- a/5343-h/5343-h.htm~
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12839 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-
-body { margin-left: 20%;
- margin-right: 20%;
- text-align: justify; }
-
-h1, h2, h3, h4, h5 {text-align: center; font-style: normal; font-weight:
-normal; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: .5em; margin-bottom: .5em;}
-
-h1 {font-size: 300%;
- margin-top: 0.6em;
- margin-bottom: 0.6em;
- letter-spacing: 0.12em;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
- text-indent: 0em;}
-h2 {font-size: 150%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-h3 {font-size: 130%; margin-top: 1em;}
-h4 {font-size: 120%;}
-h5 {font-size: 110%;}
-
-.no-break {page-break-before: avoid;} /* for epubs */
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em;}
-
-hr {width: 80%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
-
-p {text-indent: 1em;
- margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
-
-p.poem {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- font-size: 90%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.letter {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.right {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-div.fig { display:block;
- margin:0 auto;
- text-align:center;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-a:link {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:visited {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:hover {color:red}
-
-</style>
-
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold;'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Rainbow Valley</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Lucy Maud Montgomery</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Release Date: July 3, 2002 [eBook #5343]<br />
-[Most recently updated: May 5, 2021]</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci, Elizabeth Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan, Judith Fetterolf, Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks, Steve Callis, Virginia Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark Ockerbloom, Ben Crowder and David Widger</div>
-<div style='margin-top:2em;margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***</div>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:55%;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" alt="[Illustration]" />
-</div>
-
-<h1>Rainbow Valley</h1>
-
-<h2 class="no-break">by Lucy Maud Montgomery</h2>
-
-<h5>Author of &ldquo;Anne of Green Gables,&rdquo; &ldquo;Anne of the
-Island,&rdquo;<br />
-&ldquo;Anne&rsquo;s House of Dreams,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Story Girl,&rdquo;
-&ldquo;The Watchman,&rdquo; etc.</h5>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;The thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts.&rdquo;<br />
-&mdash;LONGFELLOW
-</p>
-
-<h5>TO THE MEMORY OF<br />
-<br />
-GOLDWIN LAPP, ROBERT BROOKES AND MORLEY SHIER<br />
-<br />
-WHO MADE THE SUPREME SACRIFICE THAT THE HAPPY VALLEYS OF THEIR HOME LAND MIGHT
-BE KEPT SACRED FROM THE RAVAGE OF THE INVADER</h5>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2>Contents</h2>
-
-<table summary="" style="">
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap01">I. HOME AGAIN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap02">II. SHEER GOSSIP</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap03">III. THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap04">IV. THE MANSE CHILDREN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap05">V. THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap06">VI. MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap07">VII. A FISHY EPISODE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap08">VIII. MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap09">IX. UNA INTERVENES</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap10">X. THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap11">XI. A DREADFUL DISCOVERY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap12">XII. AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap13">XIII. THE HOUSE ON THE HILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap14">XIV. MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap15">XV. MORE GOSSIP</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap16">XVI. TIT FOR TAT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap17">XVII. A DOUBLE VICTORY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap18">XVIII. MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap19">XIX. POOR ADAM!</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap20">XX. FAITH MAKES A FRIEND</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap21">XXI. THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap22">XXII. ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap23">XXIII. THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap24">XXIV. A CHARITABLE IMPULSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap25">XXV. ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER &ldquo;EXPLANATION&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap26">XXVI. MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap27">XXVII. A SACRED CONCERT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap28">XXVIII. A FAST DAY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap29">XXIX. A WEIRD TALE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap30">XXX. THE GHOST ON THE DYKE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap31">XXXI. CARL DOES PENANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap32">XXXII. TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap33">XXXIII. CARL IS&mdash;NOT&mdash;WHIPPED</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap34">XXXIV. UNA VISITS THE HILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap35">XXXV. &ldquo;LET THE PIPER COME&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>RAINBOW VALLEY</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap01"></a>CHAPTER I.<br />
-HOME AGAIN</h2>
-
-<p>
-It was a clear, apple-green evening in May, and Four Winds Harbour was
-mirroring back the clouds of the golden west between its softly dark shores.
-The sea moaned eerily on the sand-bar, sorrowful even in spring, but a sly,
-jovial wind came piping down the red harbour road along which Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s comfortable, matronly figure was making its way towards the
-village of Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia was rightfully Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and had been Mrs. Marshall Elliott for thirteen years, but even yet more people
-referred to her as Miss Cornelia than as Mrs. Elliott. The old name was dear to
-her old friends, only one of them contemptuously dropped it. Susan Baker, the
-gray and grim and faithful handmaiden of the Blythe family at Ingleside, never
-lost an opportunity of calling her &ldquo;Mrs. Marshall Elliott,&rdquo; with
-the most killing and pointed emphasis, as if to say &ldquo;You wanted to be
-Mrs. and Mrs. you shall be with a vengeance as far as I am concerned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia was going up to Ingleside to see Dr. and Mrs. Blythe, who were
-just home from Europe. They had been away for three months, having left in
-February to attend a famous medical congress in London; and certain things,
-which Miss Cornelia was anxious to discuss, had taken place in the Glen during
-their absence. For one thing, there was a new family in the manse. And such a
-family! Miss Cornelia shook her head over them several times as she walked
-briskly along.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan Baker and the Anne Shirley of other days saw her coming, as they sat on
-the big veranda at Ingleside, enjoying the charm of the cat&rsquo;s light, the
-sweetness of sleepy robins whistling among the twilit maples, and the dance of
-a gusty group of daffodils blowing against the old, mellow, red brick wall of
-the lawn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne was sitting on the steps, her hands clasped over her knee, looking, in the
-kind dusk, as girlish as a mother of many has any right to be; and the
-beautiful gray-green eyes, gazing down the harbour road, were as full of
-unquenchable sparkle and dream as ever. Behind her, in the hammock, Rilla
-Blythe was curled up, a fat, roly-poly little creature of six years, the
-youngest of the Ingleside children. She had curly red hair and hazel eyes that
-were now buttoned up after the funny, wrinkled fashion in which Rilla always
-went to sleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shirley, &ldquo;the little brown boy,&rdquo; as he was known in the family
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s Who,&rdquo; was asleep in Susan&rsquo;s arms. He was
-brown-haired, brown-eyed and brown-skinned, with very rosy cheeks, and he was
-Susan&rsquo;s especial love. After his birth Anne had been very ill for a long
-time, and Susan &ldquo;mothered&rdquo; the baby with a passionate tenderness
-which none of the other children, dear as they were to her, had ever called
-out. Dr. Blythe had said that but for her he would never have lived.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I gave him life just as much as you did, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; Susan was
-wont to say. &ldquo;He is just as much my baby as he is yours.&rdquo; And,
-indeed, it was always to Susan that Shirley ran, to be kissed for bumps, and
-rocked to sleep, and protected from well-deserved spankings. Susan had
-conscientiously spanked all the other Blythe children when she thought they
-needed it for their souls&rsquo; good, but she would not spank Shirley nor
-allow his mother to do it. Once, Dr. Blythe had spanked him and Susan had been
-stormily indignant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That man would spank an angel, Mrs. Dr. dear, that he would,&rdquo; she
-had declared bitterly; and she would not make the poor doctor a pie for weeks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She had taken Shirley with her to her brother&rsquo;s home during his
-parents&rsquo; absence, while all the other children had gone to Avonlea, and
-she had three blessed months of him all to herself. Nevertheless, Susan was
-very glad to find herself back at Ingleside, with all her darlings around her
-again. Ingleside was her world and in it she reigned supreme. Even Anne seldom
-questioned her decisions, much to the disgust of Mrs. Rachel Lynde of Green
-Gables, who gloomily told Anne, whenever she visited Four Winds, that she was
-letting Susan get to be entirely too much of a boss and would live to rue it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here is Cornelia Bryant coming up the harbour road, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;She will be coming up to unload three
-months&rsquo; gossip on us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope so,&rdquo; said Anne, hugging her knees. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m
-starving for Glen St. Mary gossip, Susan. I hope Miss Cornelia can tell me
-everything that has happened while we&rsquo;ve been
-away&mdash;<i>everything</i>&mdash;who has got born, or married, or drunk; who
-has died, or gone away, or come, or fought, or lost a cow, or found a beau.
-It&rsquo;s so delightful to be home again with all the dear Glen folks, and I
-want to know all about them. Why, I remember wondering, as I walked through
-Westminster Abbey which of her two especial beaux Millicent Drew would finally
-marry. Do you know, Susan, I have a dreadful suspicion that I love
-gossip.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, of course, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; admitted Susan, &ldquo;every
-proper woman likes to hear the news. I am rather interested in Millicent
-Drew&rsquo;s case myself. I never had a beau, much less two, and I do not mind
-now, for being an old maid does not hurt when you get used to it.
-Millicent&rsquo;s hair always looks to me as if she had swept it up with a
-broom. But the men do not seem to mind that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They see only her pretty, piquant, mocking, little face, Susan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That may very well be, Mrs. Dr. dear. The Good Book says that favour is
-deceitful and beauty is vain, but I should not have minded finding that out for
-myself, if it had been so ordained. I have no doubt we will all be beautiful
-when we are angels, but what good will it do us then? Speaking of gossip,
-however, they do say that poor Mrs. Harrison Miller over harbour tried to hang
-herself last week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Susan!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Calm yourself, Mrs. Dr. dear. She did not succeed. But I really do not
-blame her for trying, for her husband is a terrible man. But she was very
-foolish to think of hanging herself and leaving the way clear for him to marry
-some other woman. If I had been in her shoes, Mrs. Dr. dear, I would have gone
-to work to worry him so that he would try to hang himself instead of me. Not
-that I hold with people hanging themselves under any circumstances, Mrs. Dr.
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with Harrison Miller, anyway?&rdquo; said Anne
-impatiently. &ldquo;He is always driving some one to extremes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, some people call it religion and some call it cussedness, begging
-your pardon, Mrs. Dr. dear, for using such a word. It seems they cannot make
-out which it is in Harrison&rsquo;s case. There are days when he growls at
-everybody because he thinks he is fore-ordained to eternal punishment. And then
-there are days when he says he does not care and goes and gets drunk. My own
-opinion is that he is not sound in his intellect, for none of that branch of
-the Millers were. His grandfather went out of his mind. He thought he was
-surrounded by big black spiders. They crawled over him and floated in the air
-about him. I hope I shall never go insane, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I do not think I
-will, because it is not a habit of the Bakers. But, if an all-wise Providence
-should decree it, I hope it will not take the form of big black spiders, for I
-loathe the animals. As for Mrs. Miller, I do not know whether she really
-deserves pity or not. There are some who say she just married Harrison to spite
-Richard Taylor, which seems to me a very peculiar reason for getting married.
-But then, of course, <i>I</i> am no judge of things matrimonial, Mrs. Dr. dear.
-And there is Cornelia Bryant at the gate, so I will put this blessed brown baby
-on his bed and get my knitting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap02"></a>CHAPTER II.<br />
-SHEER GOSSIP</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where are the other children?&rdquo; asked Miss Cornelia, when the first
-greetings&mdash;cordial on her side, rapturous on Anne&rsquo;s, and dignified
-on Susan&rsquo;s&mdash;were over.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shirley is in bed and Jem and Walter and the twins are down in their
-beloved Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;They just came home this
-afternoon, you know, and they could hardly wait until supper was over before
-rushing down to the valley. They love it above every spot on earth. Even the
-maple grove doesn&rsquo;t rival it in their affections.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am afraid they love it too well,&rdquo; said Susan gloomily.
-&ldquo;Little Jem said once he would rather go to Rainbow Valley than to heaven
-when he died, and that was not a proper remark.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose they had a great time in Avonlea?&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Enormous. Marilla does spoil them terribly. Jem, in particular, can do
-no wrong in her eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Cuthbert must be an old lady now,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia,
-getting out her knitting, so that she could hold her own with Susan. Miss
-Cornelia held that the woman whose hands were employed always had the advantage
-over the woman whose hands were not.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Marilla is eighty-five,&rdquo; said Anne with a sigh. &ldquo;Her hair is
-snow-white. But, strange to say, her eyesight is better than it was when she
-was sixty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, dearie, I&rsquo;m real glad you&rsquo;re all back. I&rsquo;ve been
-dreadful lonesome. But we haven&rsquo;t been dull in the Glen, believe
-<i>me</i>. There hasn&rsquo;t been such an exciting spring in my time, as far
-as church matters go. We&rsquo;ve got settled with a minister at last, Anne
-dearie.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Reverend John Knox Meredith, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan,
-resolved not to let Miss Cornelia tell all the news.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is he nice?&rdquo; asked Anne interestedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia sighed and Susan groaned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, he&rsquo;s nice enough if that were all,&rdquo; said the former.
-&ldquo;He is <i>very</i> nice&mdash;and very learned&mdash;and very spiritual.
-But, oh Anne dearie, he has no common sense!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How was it you called him, then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there&rsquo;s no doubt he is by far the best preacher we ever had
-in Glen St. Mary church,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, veering a tack or two.
-&ldquo;I suppose it is because he is so moony and absent-minded that he never
-got a town call. His trial sermon was simply wonderful, believe <i>me</i>.
-Every one went mad about it&mdash;and his looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is <i>very</i> comely, Mrs. Dr. dear, and when all is said and done,
-I <i>do</i> like to see a well-looking man in the pulpit,&rdquo; broke in
-Susan, thinking it was time she asserted herself again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;we were anxious to get
-settled. And Mr. Meredith was the first candidate we were all agreed on.
-Somebody had some objection to all the others. There was some talk of calling
-Mr. Folsom. He was a good preacher, too, but somehow people didn&rsquo;t care
-for his appearance. He was too dark and sleek.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He looked exactly like a great black tomcat, that he did, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;I never could abide such a man in the pulpit
-every Sunday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then Mr. Rogers came and he was like a chip in porridge&mdash;neither
-harm nor good,&rdquo; resumed Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But if he had preached like
-Peter and Paul it would have profited him nothing, for that was the day old
-Caleb Ramsay&rsquo;s sheep strayed into church and gave a loud
-&lsquo;ba-a-a&rsquo; just as he announced his text. Everybody laughed, and poor
-Rogers had no chance after that. Some thought we ought to call Mr. Stewart,
-because he was so well educated. He could read the New Testament in five
-languages.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I do not think he was any surer than other men of getting to heaven
-because of that,&rdquo; interjected Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Most of us didn&rsquo;t like his delivery,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia,
-ignoring Susan. &ldquo;He talked in grunts, so to speak. And Mr. Arnett
-couldn&rsquo;t preach <i>at all</i>. And he picked about the worst candidating
-text there is in the Bible&mdash;&lsquo;Curse ye Meroz.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whenever he got stuck for an idea, he would bang the Bible and shout
-very bitterly, &lsquo;Curse ye Meroz.&rsquo; Poor Meroz got thoroughly cursed
-that day, whoever he was, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The minister who is candidating can&rsquo;t be too careful what text he
-chooses,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia solemnly. &ldquo;I believe Mr. Pierson would
-have got the call if he had picked a different text. But when he announced
-&lsquo;I will lift my eyes to the hills&rsquo; <i>he</i> was done for. Every
-one grinned, for every one knew that those two Hill girls from the Harbour Head
-have been setting their caps for every single minister who came to the Glen for
-the last fifteen years. And Mr. Newman had too large a family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He stayed with my brother-in-law, James Clow,&rdquo; said Susan.
-&ldquo;&lsquo;How many children have you got?&rsquo; I asked him. &lsquo;Nine
-boys and a sister for each of them,&rsquo; he said. &lsquo;Eighteen!&rsquo;
-said I. &lsquo;Dear me, what a family!&rsquo; And then he laughed and laughed.
-But I do not know why, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am certain that eighteen children
-would be too many for any manse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He had only ten children, Susan,&rdquo; explained Miss Cornelia, with
-contemptuous patience. &ldquo;And ten good children would not be much worse for
-the manse and congregation than the four who are there now. Though I
-wouldn&rsquo;t say, Anne dearie, that they are so bad, either. I like
-them&mdash;everybody likes them. It&rsquo;s impossible to help liking them.
-They would be real nice little souls if there was anyone to look after their
-manners and teach them what is right and proper. For instance, at school the
-teacher says they are model children. But at home they simply run wild.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about Mrs. Meredith?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s <i>no</i> Mrs. Meredith. That is just the trouble. Mr.
-Meredith is a widower. His wife died four years ago. If we had known that I
-don&rsquo;t suppose we would have called him, for a widower is even worse in a
-congregation than a single man. But he was heard to speak of his children and
-we all supposed there was a mother, too. And when they came there was nobody
-but old Aunt Martha, as they call her. She&rsquo;s a cousin of Mr.
-Meredith&rsquo;s mother, I believe, and he took her in to save her from the
-poorhouse. She is seventy-five years old, half blind, and very deaf and very
-cranky.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And a very poor cook, Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst possible manager for a manse,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-bitterly. &ldquo;Mr. Meredith won&rsquo;t get any other housekeeper because he
-says it would hurt Aunt Martha&rsquo;s feelings. Anne dearie, believe me, the
-state of that manse is something terrible. Everything is thick with dust and
-nothing is ever in its place. And we had painted and papered it all so nice
-before they came.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are four children, you say?&rdquo; asked Anne, beginning to mother
-them already in her heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. They run up just like the steps of a stair. Gerald&rsquo;s the
-oldest. He&rsquo;s twelve and they call him Jerry. He&rsquo;s a clever boy.
-Faith is eleven. She is a regular tomboy but pretty as a picture, I must
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She looks like an angel but she is a holy terror for mischief, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan solemnly. &ldquo;I was at the manse one night last week
-and Mrs. James Millison was there, too. She had brought them up a dozen eggs
-and a little pail of milk&mdash;a <i>very</i> little pail, Mrs. Dr. dear. Faith took
-them and whisked down the cellar with them. Near the bottom of the stairs she
-caught her toe and fell the rest of the way, milk and eggs and all. You can
-imagine the result, Mrs. Dr. dear. But that child came up laughing. &lsquo;I
-don&rsquo;t know whether I&rsquo;m myself or a custard pie,&rsquo; she said.
-And Mrs. James Millison was very angry. She said she would never take another
-thing to the manse if it was to be wasted and destroyed in that fashion.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maria Millison never hurt herself taking things to the manse,&rdquo;
-sniffed Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She just took them that night as an excuse for
-curiosity. But poor Faith is always getting into scrapes. She is so heedless
-and impulsive.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just like me. I&rsquo;m going to like your Faith,&rdquo; said Anne
-decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is full of spunk&mdash;and I do like spunk, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo;
-admitted Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something taking about her,&rdquo; conceded Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;You never see her but she&rsquo;s laughing, and somehow it always makes
-you want to laugh too. She can&rsquo;t even keep a straight face in church. Una
-is ten&mdash;she&rsquo;s a sweet little thing&mdash;not pretty, but sweet. And
-Thomas Carlyle is nine. They call him Carl, and he has a regular mania for
-collecting toads and bugs and frogs and bringing them into the house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose he was responsible for the dead rat that was lying on a chair
-in the parlour the afternoon Mrs. Grant called. It gave her a turn,&rdquo; said
-Susan, &ldquo;and I do not wonder, for manse parlours are no places for dead
-rats. To be sure it may have been the cat who left it, there. <i>He</i> is as full of
-the old Nick as he can be stuffed, Mrs. Dr. dear. A manse cat should at least
-<i>look</i> respectable, in my opinion, whatever he really is. But I never saw such a
-rakish-looking beast. And he walks along the ridgepole of the manse almost
-every evening at sunset, Mrs. Dr. dear, and waves his tail, and that is not
-becoming.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of it is, they are <i>never</i> decently dressed,&rdquo; sighed Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;And since the snow went they go to school barefooted. Now, you
-know Anne dearie, that isn&rsquo;t the right thing for manse
-children&mdash;especially when the Methodist minister&rsquo;s little girl
-always wears such nice buttoned boots. And I <i>do</i> wish they wouldn&rsquo;t play
-in the old Methodist graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s very tempting, when it&rsquo;s right beside the manse,&rdquo;
-said Anne. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve always thought graveyards must be delightful
-places to play in.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, you did not, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said loyal Susan, determined
-to protect Anne from herself. &ldquo;You have too much good sense and
-decorum.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did they ever build that manse beside the graveyard in the first
-place?&rdquo; asked Anne. &ldquo;Their lawn is so small there is no place for
-them to play except in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It <i>was</i> a mistake,&rdquo; admitted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But they got the
-lot cheap. And no other manse children ever thought of playing there. Mr.
-Meredith shouldn&rsquo;t allow it. But he has always got his nose buried in a
-book, when he is home. He reads and reads, or walks about in his study in a
-day-dream. So far he hasn&rsquo;t forgotten to be in church on Sundays, but
-twice he has forgotten about the prayer-meeting and one of the elders had to go
-over to the manse and remind him. And he forgot about Fanny Cooper&rsquo;s
-wedding. They rang him up on the &lsquo;phone and then he rushed right over,
-just as he was, carpet slippers and all. One wouldn&rsquo;t mind if the
-Methodists didn&rsquo;t laugh so about it. But there&rsquo;s one
-comfort&mdash;they can&rsquo;t criticize his sermons. He wakes up when
-he&rsquo;s in the pulpit, believe <i>me</i>. And the Methodist minister can&rsquo;t
-preach at all&mdash;so they tell me. <i>I</i> have never heard him, thank
-goodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s scorn of men had abated somewhat since her marriage, but
-her scorn of Methodists remained untinged of charity. Susan smiled slyly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They do say, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, that the Methodists and
-Presbyterians are talking of uniting,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, all I hope is that I&rsquo;ll be under the sod if that ever comes
-to pass,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;I shall never have truck or
-trade with Methodists, and Mr. Meredith will find that he&rsquo;d better steer
-clear of them, too. He is entirely too sociable with them, believe <i>me</i>. Why, he
-went to the Jacob Drews&rsquo; silver-wedding supper and got into a nice scrape
-as a result.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Drew asked him to carve the roast goose&mdash;for Jacob Drew never
-did or could carve. Well, Mr. Meredith tackled it, and in the process he
-knocked it clean off the platter into Mrs. Reese&rsquo;s lap, who was sitting
-next him. And he just said dreamily. &lsquo;Mrs. Reese, will you kindly return
-me that goose?&rsquo; Mrs. Reese &lsquo;returned&rsquo; it, as meek as Moses,
-but she must have been furious, for she had on her new silk dress. The worst of
-it is, she was a Methodist.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I think that is better than if she was a Presbyterian,&rdquo;
-interjected Susan. &ldquo;If she had been a Presbyterian she would mostly
-likely have left the church and we cannot afford to lose our members. And Mrs.
-Reese is not liked in her own church, because she gives herself such great
-airs, so that the Methodists would be rather pleased that Mr. Meredith spoiled
-her dress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The point is, he made himself ridiculous, and <i>I</i>, for one, do not
-like to see my minister made ridiculous in the eyes of the Methodists,&rdquo;
-said Miss Cornelia stiffly. &ldquo;If he had had a wife it would not have
-happened.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not see if he had a dozen wives how they could have prevented Mrs.
-Drew from using up her tough old gander for the wedding-feast,&rdquo; said
-Susan stubbornly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say that was her husband&rsquo;s doing,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;Jacob Drew is a conceited, stingy, domineering creature.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And they do say he and his wife detest each other&mdash;which does not
-seem to me the proper way for married folks to get along. But then, of course,
-I have had no experience along that line,&rdquo; said Susan, tossing her head.
-&ldquo;And <i>I</i> am not one to blame everything on the men. Mrs. Drew is
-mean enough herself. They say that the only thing she was ever known to give
-away was a crock of butter made out of cream a rat had fell into. She
-contributed it to a church social. Nobody found out about the rat until
-afterwards.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fortunately, all the people the Merediths have offended so far are
-Methodists,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;That Jerry went to the Methodist
-prayer-meeting one night about a fortnight ago and sat beside old William Marsh
-who got up as usual and testified with fearful groans. &lsquo;Do you feel any
-better now?&rsquo; whispered Jerry when William sat down. Poor Jerry meant to
-be sympathetic, but Mr. Marsh thought he was impertinent and is furious at him.
-Of course, Jerry had no business to be in a Methodist prayer-meeting at all.
-But they go where they like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope they will not offend Mrs. Alec Davis of the Harbour Head,&rdquo;
-said Susan. &ldquo;She is a very touchy woman, I understand, but she is very
-well off and pays the most of any one to the salary. I have heard that she says
-the Merediths are the worst brought up children she ever saw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Every word you say convinces me more and more that the Merediths belong
-to the race that knows Joseph,&rdquo; said Mistress Anne decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When all is said and done, they <i>do</i>,&rdquo; admitted Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;And that balances everything. Anyway, we&rsquo;ve got them now and we
-must just do the best we can by them and stick up for them to the Methodists.
-Well, I suppose I must be getting down harbour. Marshall will soon be
-home&mdash;he went over-harbour to-day&mdash;and wanting his super, man-like.
-I&rsquo;m sorry I haven&rsquo;t seen the other children. And where&rsquo;s the
-doctor?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Up at the Harbour Head. We&rsquo;ve only been home three days and in
-that time he has spent three hours in his own bed and eaten two meals in his
-own house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, everybody who has been sick for the last six weeks has been
-waiting for him to come home&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t blame them. When that
-over-harbour doctor married the undertaker&rsquo;s daughter at Lowbridge people
-felt suspicious of him. It didn&rsquo;t look well. You and the doctor must come
-down soon and tell us all about your trip. I suppose you&rsquo;ve had a
-splendid time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had,&rdquo; agreed Anne. &ldquo;It was the fulfilment of years of
-dreams. The old world is very lovely and very wonderful. But we have come back
-very well satisfied with our own land. Canada is the finest country in the
-world, Miss Cornelia.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nobody ever doubted that,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, complacently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And old P.E.I. is the loveliest province in it and Four Winds the
-loveliest spot in P.E.I.,&rdquo; laughed Anne, looking adoringly out over the
-sunset splendour of glen and harbour and gulf. She waved her hand at it.
-&ldquo;I saw nothing more beautiful than that in Europe, Miss Cornelia. Must
-you go? The children will be sorry to have missed you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must come and see me soon. Tell them the doughnut jar is always
-full.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, at supper they were planning a descent on you. They&rsquo;ll go
-soon; but they must settle down to school again now. And the twins are going to
-take music lessons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not from the Methodist minister&rsquo;s wife, I hope?&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;from Rosemary West. I was up last evening to arrange it with
-her. What a pretty girl she is!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary holds her own well. She isn&rsquo;t as young as she once
-was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought her very charming. I&rsquo;ve never had any real acquaintance
-with her, you know. Their house is so out of the way, and I&rsquo;ve seldom
-ever seen her except at church.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;People always have liked Rosemary West, though they don&rsquo;t
-understand her,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, quite unconscious of the high
-tribute she was paying to Rosemary&rsquo;s charm. &ldquo;Ellen has always kept
-her down, so to speak. She has tyrannized over her, and yet she has always
-indulged her in a good many ways. Rosemary was engaged once, you know&mdash;to
-young Martin Crawford. His ship was wrecked on the Magdalens and all the crew
-were drowned. Rosemary was just a child&mdash;only seventeen. But she was never
-the same afterwards. She and Ellen have stayed very close at home since their
-mother&rsquo;s death. They don&rsquo;t often get to their own church at
-Lowbridge and I understand Ellen doesn&rsquo;t approve of going too often to a
-Presbyterian church. To the Methodist she <i>never</i> goes, I&rsquo;ll say that much
-for her. That family of Wests have always been strong Episcopalians. Rosemary
-and Ellen are pretty well off. Rosemary doesn&rsquo;t really need to give music
-lessons. She does it because she likes to. They are distantly related to
-Leslie, you know. Are the Fords coming to the harbour this summer?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. They are going on a trip to Japan and will probably be away for a
-year. Owen&rsquo;s new novel is to have a Japanese setting. This will be the
-first summer that the dear old House of Dreams will be empty since we left
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think Owen Ford might find enough to write about in Canada
-without dragging his wife and his innocent children off to a heathen country
-like Japan,&rdquo; grumbled Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;<i>The Life Book</i> was the
-best book he&rsquo;s ever written and he got the material for that right here
-in Four Winds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Captain Jim gave him the most of that, you know. And he collected it all
-over the world. But Owen&rsquo;s books are all delightful, I think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, they&rsquo;re well enough as far as they go. I make it a point to
-read every one he writes, though I&rsquo;ve always held, Anne dearie, that
-reading novels is a sinful waste of time. I shall write and tell him my opinion
-of this Japanese business, believe <i>me</i>. Does he want Kenneth and Persis to be
-converted into pagans?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-With which unanswerable conundrum Miss Cornelia took her departure. Susan
-proceeded to put Rilla in bed and Anne sat on the veranda steps under the early
-stars and dreamed her incorrigible dreams and learned all over again for the
-hundredth happy time what a moonrise splendour and sheen could be on Four Winds
-Harbour.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap03"></a>CHAPTER III.<br />
-THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN</h2>
-
-<p>
-In daytime the Blythe children liked very well to play in the rich, soft greens
-and glooms of the big maple grove between Ingleside and the Glen St. Mary pond;
-but for evening revels there was no place like the little valley behind the
-maple grove. It was a fairy realm of romance to them. Once, looking from the
-attic windows of Ingleside, through the mist and aftermath of a summer
-thunderstorm, they had seen the beloved spot arched by a glorious rainbow, one
-end of which seemed to dip straight down to where a corner of the pond ran up
-into the lower end of the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let us call it Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Walter delightedly, and
-Rainbow Valley thenceforth it was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Outside of Rainbow Valley the wind might be rollicking and boisterous. Here it
-always went gently. Little, winding, fairy paths ran here and there over spruce
-roots cushioned with moss. Wild cherry trees, that in blossom time would be
-misty white, were scattered all over the valley, mingling with the dark
-spruces. A little brook with amber waters ran through it from the Glen village.
-The houses of the village were comfortably far away; only at the upper end of
-the valley was a little tumble-down, deserted cottage, referred to as
-&ldquo;the old Bailey house.&rdquo; It had not been occupied for many years,
-but a grass-grown dyke surrounded it and inside was an ancient garden where the
-Ingleside children could find violets and daisies and June lilies still
-blooming in season. For the rest, the garden was overgrown with caraway that
-swayed and foamed in the moonshine of summer eves like seas of silver.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To the sought lay the pond and beyond it the ripened distance lost itself in
-purple woods, save where, on a high hill, a solitary old gray homestead looked
-down on glen and harbour. There was a certain wild woodsiness and solitude
-about Rainbow Valley, in spite of its nearness to the village, which endeared
-it to the children of Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The valley was full of dear, friendly hollows and the largest of these was
-their favourite stamping ground. Here they were assembled on this particular
-evening. There was a grove of young spruces in this hollow, with a tiny, grassy
-glade in its heart, opening on the bank of the brook. By the brook grew a
-silver birch-tree, a young, incredibly straight thing which Walter had named
-the &ldquo;White Lady.&rdquo; In this glade, too, were the &ldquo;Tree
-Lovers,&rdquo; as Walter called a spruce and maple which grew so closely
-together that their boughs were inextricably intertwined. Jem had hung an old
-string of sleigh-bells, given him by the Glen blacksmith, on the Tree Lovers,
-and every visitant breeze called out sudden fairy tinkles from it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How nice it is to be back!&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;After all, none of
-the Avonlea places are quite as nice as Rainbow Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But they were very fond of the Avonlea places for all that. A visit to Green
-Gables was always considered a great treat. Aunt Marilla was very good to them,
-and so was Mrs. Rachel Lynde, who was spending the leisure of her old age in
-knitting cotton-warp quilts against the day when Anne&rsquo;s daughters should
-need a &ldquo;setting-out.&rdquo; There were jolly playmates there,
-too&mdash;&ldquo;Uncle&rdquo; Davy&rsquo;s children and &ldquo;Aunt&rdquo;
-Diana&rsquo;s children. They knew all the spots their mother had loved so well
-in her girlhood at old Green Gables&mdash;the long Lover&rsquo;s Lane, that was
-pink-hedged in wild-rose time, the always neat yard, with its willows and
-poplars, the Dryad&rsquo;s Bubble, lucent and lovely as of yore, the Lake of
-Shining Waters, and Willowmere. The twins had their mother&rsquo;s old
-porch-gable room, and Aunt Marilla used to come in at night, when she thought
-they were asleep, to gloat over them. But they all knew she loved Jem the best.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was at present busily occupied in frying a mess of small trout which he had
-just caught in the pond. His stove consisted of a circle of red stones, with a
-fire kindled in it, and his culinary utensils were an old tin can, hammered out
-flat, and a fork with only one tine left. Nevertheless, ripping good meals had
-before now been thus prepared.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was the child of the House of Dreams. All the others had been born at
-Ingleside. He had curly red hair, like his mother&rsquo;s, and frank hazel
-eyes, like his father&rsquo;s; he had his mother&rsquo;s fine nose and his
-father&rsquo;s steady, humorous mouth. And he was the only one of the family
-who had ears nice enough to please Susan. But he had a standing feud with Susan
-because she would not give up calling him Little Jem. It was outrageous,
-thought thirteen-year-old Jem. Mother had more sense.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>not</i> little any more, Mother,&rdquo; he had cried indignantly,
-on his eighth birthday. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>awful</i> big.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mother had sighed and laughed and sighed again; and she never called him Little
-Jem again&mdash;in his hearing at least.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was and always had been a sturdy, reliable little chap. He never broke a
-promise. He was not a great talker. His teachers did not think him brilliant,
-but he was a good, all-round student. He never took things on faith; he always
-liked to investigate the truth of a statement for himself. Once Susan had told
-him that if he touched his tongue to a frosty latch all the skin would tear off
-it. Jem had promptly done it, &ldquo;just to see if it was so.&rdquo; He found
-it was &ldquo;so,&rdquo; at the cost of a very sore tongue for several days.
-But Jem did not grudge suffering in the interests of science. By constant
-experiment and observation he learned a great deal and his brothers and sisters
-thought his extensive knowledge of their little world quite wonderful. Jem
-always knew where the first and ripest berries grew, where the first pale
-violets shyly wakened from their winter&rsquo;s sleep, and how many blue eggs
-were in a given robin&rsquo;s nest in the maple grove. He could tell fortunes
-from daisy petals and suck honey from red clovers, and grub up all sorts of
-edible roots on the banks of the pond, while Susan went in daily fear that they
-would all be poisoned. He knew where the finest spruce-gum was to be found, in
-pale amber knots on the lichened bark, he knew where the nuts grew thickest in
-the beechwoods around the Harbour Head, and where the best trouting places up
-the brooks were. He could mimic the call of any wild bird or beast in Four
-Winds and he knew the haunt of every wild flower from spring to autumn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter Blythe was sitting under the White Lady, with a volume of poems lying
-beside him, but he was not reading. He was gazing now at the emerald-misted
-willows by the pond, and now at a flock of clouds, like little silver sheep,
-herded by the wind, that were drifting over Rainbow Valley, with rapture in his
-wide splendid eyes. Walter&rsquo;s eyes were very wonderful. All the joy and
-sorrow and laughter and loyalty and aspiration of many generations lying under
-the sod looked out of their dark gray depths.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter was a &ldquo;hop out of kin,&rdquo; as far as looks went. He did not
-resemble any known relative. He was quite the handsomest of the Ingleside
-children, with straight black hair and finely modelled features. But he had all
-his mother&rsquo;s vivid imagination and passionate love of beauty. Frost of
-winter, invitation of spring, dream of summer and glamour of autumn, all meant
-much to Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In school, where Jem was a chieftain, Walter was not thought highly of. He was
-supposed to be &ldquo;girly&rdquo; and milk-soppish, because he never fought
-and seldom joined in the school sports, preferring to herd by himself in out of
-the way corners and read books&mdash;especially &ldquo;po&rsquo;try
-books.&rdquo; Walter loved the poets and pored over their pages from the time
-he could first read. Their music was woven into his growing soul&mdash;the
-music of the immortals. Walter cherished the ambition to be a poet himself some
-day. The thing could be done. A certain Uncle Paul&mdash;so called out of
-courtesy&mdash;who lived now in that mysterious realm called &ldquo;the
-States,&rdquo; was Walter&rsquo;s model. Uncle Paul had once been a little
-school boy in Avonlea and now his poetry was read everywhere. But the Glen
-schoolboys did not know of Walter&rsquo;s dreams and would not have been
-greatly impressed if they had. In spite of his lack of physical prowess,
-however, he commanded a certain unwilling respect because of his power of
-&ldquo;talking book talk.&rdquo; Nobody in Glen St. Mary school could talk like
-him. He &ldquo;sounded like a preacher,&rdquo; one boy said; and for this
-reason he was generally left alone and not persecuted, as most boys were who
-were suspected of disliking or fearing fisticuffs.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ten year old Ingleside twins violated twin tradition by not looking in the
-least alike. Anne, who was always called Nan, was very pretty, with velvety
-nut-brown eyes and silky nut-brown hair. She was a very blithe and dainty
-little maiden&mdash;Blythe by name and blithe by nature, one of her teachers
-had said. Her complexion was quite faultless, much to her mother&rsquo;s
-satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so glad I have one daughter who can wear pink,&rdquo; Mrs.
-Blythe was wont to say jubilantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Diana Blythe, known as Di, was very like her mother, with gray-green eyes that
-always shone with a peculiar lustre and brilliancy in the dusk, and red hair.
-Perhaps this was why she was her father&rsquo;s favourite. She and Walter were
-especial chums; Di was the only one to whom he would ever read the verses he
-wrote himself&mdash;the only one who knew that he was secretly hard at work on
-an epic, strikingly resembling &ldquo;Marmion&rdquo; in some things, if not in
-others. She kept all his secrets, even from Nan, and told him all hers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Won&rsquo;t you soon have those fish ready, Jem?&rdquo; said Nan,
-sniffing with her dainty nose. &ldquo;The smell makes me awfully hungry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They&rsquo;re nearly ready,&rdquo; said Jem, giving one a dexterous
-turn. &ldquo;Get out the bread and the plates, girls. Walter, wake up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How the air shines to-night,&rdquo; said Walter dreamily. Not that he
-despised fried trout either, by any means; but with Walter food for the soul
-always took first place. &ldquo;The flower angel has been walking over the
-world to-day, calling to the flowers. I can see his blue wings on that hill by
-the woods.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any angels&rsquo; wings I ever saw were white,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The flower angel&rsquo;s aren&rsquo;t. They are a pale misty blue, just
-like the haze in the valley. Oh, how I wish I could fly. It must be
-glorious.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;One does fly in dreams sometimes,&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never dream that I&rsquo;m flying exactly,&rdquo; said Walter.
-&ldquo;But I often dream that I just rise up from the ground and float over the
-fences and the trees. It&rsquo;s delightful&mdash;and I always think,
-&lsquo;This <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> a dream like it&rsquo;s always been before. <i>This</i> is
-real&rsquo;&mdash;and then I wake up after all, and it&rsquo;s
-heart-breaking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hurry up, Nan,&rdquo; ordered Jem.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan had produced the banquet-board&mdash;a board literally as well as
-figuratively&mdash;from which many a feast, seasoned as no viands were
-elsewhere, had been eaten in Rainbow Valley. It was converted into a table by
-propping it on two large, mossy stones. Newspapers served as tablecloth, and
-broken plates and handleless cups from Susan&rsquo;s discard furnished the
-dishes. From a tin box secreted at the root of a spruce tree Nan brought forth
-bread and salt. The brook gave Adam&rsquo;s ale of unsurpassed crystal. For the
-rest, there was a certain sauce, compounded of fresh air and appetite of youth,
-which gave to everything a divine flavour. To sit in Rainbow Valley, steeped in
-a twilight half gold, half amethyst, rife with the odours of balsam-fir and
-woodsy growing things in their springtime prime, with the pale stars of wild
-strawberry blossoms all around you, and with the sough of the wind and tinkle
-of bells in the shaking tree tops, and eat fried trout and dry bread, was
-something which the mighty of earth might have envied them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sit in,&rdquo; invited Nan, as Jem placed his sizzling tin platter of
-trout on the table. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s your turn to say grace, Jem.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve done my part frying the trout,&rdquo; protested Jem, who
-hated saying grace. &ldquo;Let Walter say it. He <i>likes</i> saying grace. And cut it
-short, too, Walt. I&rsquo;m starving.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Walter said no grace, short or long, just then. An interruption occurred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s coming down from the manse hill?&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap04"></a>CHAPTER IV.<br />
-THE MANSE CHILDREN</h2>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha might be, and was, a very poor housekeeper; the Rev. John Knox
-Meredith might be, and was, a very absent-minded, indulgent man. But it could
-not be denied that there was something very homelike and lovable about the Glen
-St. Mary manse in spite of its untidiness. Even the critical housewives of the
-Glen felt it, and were unconsciously mellowed in judgment because of it.
-Perhaps its charm was in part due to accidental circumstances&mdash;the
-luxuriant vines clustering over its gray, clap-boarded walls, the friendly
-acacias and balm-of-gileads that crowded about it with the freedom of old
-acquaintance, and the beautiful views of harbour and sand-dunes from its front
-windows. But these things had been there in the reign of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s
-predecessor, when the manse had been the primmest, neatest, and dreariest house
-in the Glen. So much of the credit must be given to the personality of its new
-inmates. There was an atmosphere of laughter and comradeship about it; the
-doors were always open; and inner and outer worlds joined hands. Love was the
-only law in Glen St. Mary manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The people of his congregation said that Mr. Meredith spoiled his children.
-Very likely he did. It is certain that he could not bear to scold them.
-&ldquo;They have no mother,&rdquo; he used to say to himself, with a sigh, when
-some unusually glaring peccadillo forced itself upon his notice. But he did not
-know the half of their goings-on. He belonged to the sect of dreamers. The
-windows of his study looked out on the graveyard but, as he paced up and down
-the room, reflecting deeply on the immortality of the soul, he was quite
-unaware that Jerry and Carl were playing leap-frog hilariously over the flat
-stones in that abode of dead Methodists. Mr. Meredith had occasional acute
-realizations that his children were not so well looked after, physically or
-morally, as they had been before his wife died, and he had always a dim
-sub-consciousness that house and meals were very different under Aunt
-Martha&rsquo;s management from what they had been under Cecilia&rsquo;s. For
-the rest, he lived in a world of books and abstractions; and, therefore,
-although his clothes were seldom brushed, and although the Glen housewives
-concluded, from the ivory-like pallor of his clear-cut features and slender
-hands, that he never got enough to eat, he was not an unhappy man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If ever a graveyard could be called a cheerful place, the old Methodist
-graveyard at Glen St. Mary might be so called. The new graveyard, at the other
-side of the Methodist church, was a neat and proper and doleful spot; but the
-old one had been left so long to Nature&rsquo;s kindly and gracious ministries
-that it had become very pleasant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was surrounded on three sides by a dyke of stones and sod, topped by a gray
-and uncertain paling. Outside the dyke grew a row of tall fir trees with thick,
-balsamic boughs. The dyke, which had been built by the first settlers of the
-Glen, was old enough to be beautiful, with mosses and green things growing out
-of its crevices, violets purpling at its base in the early spring days, and
-asters and golden-rod making an autumnal glory in its corners. Little ferns
-clustered companionably between its stones, and here and there a big bracken
-grew.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the eastern side there was neither fence nor dyke. The graveyard there
-straggled off into a young fir plantation, ever pushing nearer to the graves
-and deepening eastward into a thick wood. The air was always full of the
-harp-like voices of the sea, and the music of gray old trees, and in the spring
-mornings the choruses of birds in the elms around the two churches sang of life
-and not of death. The Meredith children loved the old graveyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Blue-eyed ivy, &ldquo;garden-spruce,&rdquo; and mint ran riot over the sunken
-graves. Blueberry bushes grew lavishly in the sandy corner next to the fir
-wood. The varying fashions of tombstones for three generations were to be found
-there, from the flat, oblong, red sandstone slabs of old settlers, down through
-the days of weeping willows and clasped hands, to the latest monstrosities of
-tall &ldquo;monuments&rdquo; and draped urns. One of the latter, the biggest
-and ugliest in the graveyard, was sacred to the memory of a certain Alec Davis
-who had been born a Methodist but had taken to himself a Presbyterian bride of
-the Douglas clan. She had made him turn Presbyterian and kept him toeing the
-Presbyterian mark all his life. But when he died she did not dare to doom him
-to a lonely grave in the Presbyterian graveyard over-harbour. His people were
-all buried in the Methodist cemetery; so Alec Davis went back to his own in
-death and his widow consoled herself by erecting a monument which cost more
-than any of the Methodists could afford. The Meredith children hated it,
-without just knowing why, but they loved the old, flat, bench-like stones with
-the tall grasses growing rankly about them. They made jolly seats for one
-thing. They were all sitting on one now. Jerry, tired of leap frog, was playing
-on a jew&rsquo;s-harp. Carl was lovingly poring over a strange beetle he had
-found; Una was trying to make a doll&rsquo;s dress, and Faith, leaning back on
-her slender brown wrists, was swinging her bare feet in lively time to the
-jew&rsquo;s-harp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry had his father&rsquo;s black hair and large black eyes, but in him the
-latter were flashing instead of dreamy. Faith, who came next to him, wore her
-beauty like a rose, careless and glowing. She had golden-brown eyes,
-golden-brown curls and crimson cheeks. She laughed too much to please her
-father&rsquo;s congregation and had shocked old Mrs. Taylor, the disconsolate
-spouse of several departed husbands, by saucily declaring&mdash;in the
-church-porch at that&mdash;&ldquo;The world <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> a vale of tears, Mrs.
-Taylor. It&rsquo;s a world of laughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Little dreamy Una was not given to laughter. Her braids of straight, dead-black
-hair betrayed no lawless kinks, and her almond-shaped, dark-blue eyes had
-something wistful and sorrowful in them. Her mouth had a trick of falling open
-over her tiny white teeth, and a shy, meditative smile occasionally crept over
-her small face. She was much more sensitive to public opinion than Faith, and
-had an uneasy consciousness that there was something askew in their way of
-living. She longed to put it right, but did not know how. Now and then she
-dusted the furniture&mdash;but it was so seldom she could find the duster
-because it was never in the same place twice. And when the clothes-brush was to
-be found she tried to brush her father&rsquo;s best suit on Saturdays, and once
-sewed on a missing button with coarse white thread. When Mr. Meredith went to
-church next day every female eye saw that button and the peace of the
-Ladies&rsquo; Aid was upset for weeks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl had the clear, bright, dark-blue eyes, fearless and direct, of his dead
-mother, and her brown hair with its glints of gold. He knew the secrets of bugs
-and had a sort of freemasonry with bees and beetles. Una never liked to sit
-near him because she never knew what uncanny creature might be secreted about
-him. Jerry refused to sleep with him because Carl had once taken a young garter
-snake to bed with him; so Carl slept in his old cot, which was so short that he
-could never stretch out, and had strange bed-fellows. Perhaps it was just as
-well that Aunt Martha was half blind when she made that bed. Altogether they
-were a jolly, lovable little crew, and Cecilia Meredith&rsquo;s heart must have
-ached bitterly when she faced the knowledge that she must leave them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where would you like to be buried if you were a Methodist?&rdquo; asked
-Faith cheerfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This opened up an interesting field of speculation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There isn&rsquo;t much choice. The place is full,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;d</i> like that corner near the road, I guess. I could hear the
-teams going past and the people talking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like that little hollow under the weeping birch,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;That birch is such a place for birds and they sing like mad in the
-mornings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d take the Porter lot where there&rsquo;s so many children
-buried. <i>I</i> like lots of company,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Carl,
-where&rsquo;d you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d rather not be buried at all,&rdquo; said Carl, &ldquo;but if I
-had to be I&rsquo;d like the ant-bed. Ants are <i>awf&rsquo;ly</i>
-int&rsquo;resting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How very good all the people who are buried here must have been,&rdquo;
-said Una, who had been reading the laudatory old epitaphs. &ldquo;There
-doesn&rsquo;t seem to be a single bad person in the whole graveyard. Methodists
-must be better than Presbyterians after all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe the Methodists bury their bad people just like they do
-cats,&rdquo; suggested Carl. &ldquo;Maybe they don&rsquo;t bother bringing them
-to the graveyard at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;The people that are buried here
-weren&rsquo;t any better than other folks, Una. But when anyone is dead you
-mustn&rsquo;t say anything of him but good or he&rsquo;ll come back and
-ha&rsquo;nt you. Aunt Martha told me that. I asked father if it was true and he
-just looked through me and muttered, &lsquo;True? True? What is truth? What <i>is</i>
-truth, O jesting Pilate?&rsquo; I concluded from that it must be true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wonder if Mr. Alec Davis would come back and ha&rsquo;nt me if I threw
-a stone at the urn on top of his tombstone,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Davis would,&rdquo; giggled Faith. &ldquo;She just watches us in
-church like a cat watching mice. Last Sunday I made a face at her nephew and he
-made one back at me and you should have seen her glare. I&rsquo;ll bet she
-boxed <i>his</i> ears when they got out. Mrs. Marshall Elliott told me we
-mustn&rsquo;t offend her on any account or I&rsquo;d have made a face at her,
-too!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say Jem Blythe stuck out his tongue at her once and she would never
-have his father again, even when her husband was dying,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;I wonder what the Blythe gang will be like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I liked their looks,&rdquo; said Faith. The manse children had been at
-the station that afternoon when the Blythe small fry had arrived. &ldquo;I
-liked Jem&rsquo;s looks <i>especially</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say in school that Walter&rsquo;s a sissy,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it,&rdquo; said Una, who had thought Walter very
-handsome.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he writes poetry, anyhow. He won the prize the teacher offered
-last year for writing a poem, Bertie Shakespeare Drew told me. Bertie&rsquo;s
-mother thought <i>he</i> should have got the prize because of his name, but Bertie
-said he couldn&rsquo;t write poetry to save his soul, name or no name.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we&rsquo;ll get acquainted with them as soon as they begin
-going to school,&rdquo; mused Faith. &ldquo;I hope the girls are nice. I
-don&rsquo;t like most of the girls round here. Even the nice ones are poky. But
-the Blythe twins look jolly. I thought twins always looked alike, but they
-don&rsquo;t. I think the red-haired one is the nicest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I liked their mother&rsquo;s looks,&rdquo; said Una with a little sigh.
-Una envied all children their mothers. She had been only six when her mother
-died, but she had some very precious memories, treasured in her soul like
-jewels, of twilight cuddlings and morning frolics, of loving eyes, a tender
-voice, and the sweetest, gayest laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say she isn&rsquo;t like other people,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliot says that is because she never really grew up,&rdquo; said
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;s taller than Mrs. Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, yes, but it is inside&mdash;Mrs. Elliot says Mrs. Blythe just
-stayed a little girl inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do I smell?&rdquo; interrupted Carl, sniffing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all smelled it now. A most delectable odour came floating up on the still
-evening air from the direction of the little woodsy dell below the manse hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That makes me hungry,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had only bread and molasses for supper and cold ditto for
-dinner,&rdquo; said Una plaintively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s habit was to boil a large slab of mutton early in the week
-and serve it up every day, cold and greasy, as long as it lasted. To this
-Faith, in a moment of inspiration, had give the name of &ldquo;ditto&rdquo;,
-and by this it was invariably known at the manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s go and see where that smell is coming from,&rdquo; said
-Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all sprang up, frolicked over the lawn with the abandon of young puppies,
-climbed a fence, and tore down the mossy slope, guided by the savory lure that
-ever grew stronger. A few minutes later they arrived breathlessly in the
-sanctum sanctorum of Rainbow Valley where the Blythe children were just about
-to give thanks and eat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They halted shyly. Una wished they had not been so precipitate: but Di Blythe
-was equal to that and any occasion. She stepped forward, with a comrade&rsquo;s
-smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I guess I know who you are,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You belong to the
-manse, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith nodded, her face creased by dimples.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We smelled your trout cooking and wondered what it was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must sit down and help us eat them,&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe you haven&rsquo;t more than you want yourselves,&rdquo; said
-Jerry, looking hungrily at the tin platter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve heaps&mdash;three apiece,&rdquo; said Jem. &ldquo;Sit
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No more ceremony was necessary. Down they all sat on mossy stones. Merry was
-that feast and long. Nan and Di would probably have died of horror had they
-known what Faith and Una knew perfectly well&mdash;that Carl had two young mice
-in his jacket pocket. But they never knew it, so it never hurt them. Where can
-folks get better acquainted than over a meal table? When the last trout had
-vanished, the manse children and the Ingleside children were sworn friends and
-allies. They had always known each other and always would. The race of Joseph
-recognized its own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They poured out the history of their little pasts. The manse children heard of
-Avonlea and Green Gables, of Rainbow Valley traditions, and of the little house
-by the harbour shore where Jem had been born. The Ingleside children heard of
-Maywater, where the Merediths had lived before coming to the Glen, of
-Una&rsquo;s beloved, one-eyed doll and Faith&rsquo;s pet rooster.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was inclined to resent the fact that people laughed at her for petting a
-rooster. She liked the Blythes because they accepted it without question.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A handsome rooster like Adam is just as nice a pet as a dog or cat,
-<i>I</i> think,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;If he was a canary nobody would wonder.
-And I brought him up from a little, wee, yellow chicken. Mrs. Johnson at
-Maywater gave him to me. A weasel had killed all his brothers and sisters. I
-called him after her husband. I never liked dolls or cats. Cats are too sneaky
-and dolls are <i>dead</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who lives in that house away up there?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Miss Wests&mdash;Rosemary and Ellen,&rdquo; answered Nan. &ldquo;Di
-and I are going to take music lessons from Miss Rosemary this summer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una gazed at the lucky twins with eyes whose longing was too gentle for envy.
-Oh, if she could only have music lessons! It was one of the dreams of her
-little hidden life. But nobody ever thought of such a thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Rosemary is so sweet and she always dresses so pretty,&rdquo; said
-Di. &ldquo;Her hair is just the colour of new molasses taffy,&rdquo; she added
-wistfully&mdash;for Di, like her mother before her, was not resigned to her own
-ruddy tresses.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like Miss Ellen, too,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;She always used to give
-me candies when she came to church. But Di is afraid of her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Her brows are so black and she has such a great deep voice,&rdquo; said
-Di. &ldquo;Oh, how scared of her Kenneth Ford used to be when he was little!
-Mother says the first Sunday Mrs. Ford brought him to church Miss Ellen
-happened to be there, sitting right behind them. And the minute Kenneth saw her
-he just screamed and screamed until Mrs. Ford had to carry him out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who is Mrs. Ford?&rdquo; asked Una wonderingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, the Fords don&rsquo;t live here. They only come here in the summer.
-And they&rsquo;re not coming this summer. They live in that little house
-&lsquo;way, &lsquo;way down on the harbour shore where father and mother used
-to live. I wish you could see Persis Ford. She is just like a picture.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve heard of Mrs. Ford,&rdquo; broke in Faith. &ldquo;Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew told me about her. She was married fourteen years to a dead
-man and then he came to life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;That isn&rsquo;t the way it goes at
-all. Bertie Shakespeare can never get anything straight. I know the whole story
-and I&rsquo;ll tell it to you some time, but not now, for it&rsquo;s too long
-and it&rsquo;s time for us to go home. Mother doesn&rsquo;t like us to be out
-late these damp evenings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nobody cared whether the manse children were out in the damp or not. Aunt
-Martha was already in bed and the minister was still too deeply lost in
-speculations concerning the immortality of the soul to remember the mortality
-of the body. But they went home, too, with visions of good times coming in
-their heads.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think Rainbow Valley is even nicer than the graveyard,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;And I just love those dear Blythes. It&rsquo;s <i>so</i> nice when you can
-love people because so often you <i>can&rsquo;t</i>. Father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that we should love everybody. But how can we? How could we love Mrs.
-Alec Davis?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, father only said that in the pulpit,&rdquo; said Faith airily.
-&ldquo;He has more sense than to really think it outside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Blythe children went up to Ingleside, except Jem, who slipped away for a
-few moments on a solitary expedition to a remote corner of Rainbow Valley.
-Mayflowers grew there and Jem never forgot to take his mother a bouquet as long
-as they lasted.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap05"></a>CHAPTER V.<br />
-THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is just the sort of day you feel as if things might happen,&rdquo;
-said Faith, responsive to the lure of crystal air and blue hills. She hugged
-herself with delight and danced a hornpipe on old Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s
-bench tombstone, much to the horror of two ancient maidens who happened to be
-driving past just as Faith hopped on one foot around the stone, waving the
-other and her arms in the air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And that,&rdquo; groaned one ancient maiden, &ldquo;is our
-minister&rsquo;s daughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What else could you expect of a widower&rsquo;s family?&rdquo; groaned
-the other ancient maiden. And then they both shook their heads.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was early on Saturday morning and the Merediths were out in the dew-drenched
-world with a delightful consciousness of the holiday. They had never had
-anything to do on a holiday. Even Nan and Di Blythe had certain household tasks
-for Saturday mornings, but the daughters of the manse were free to roam from
-blushing morn to dewy eve if so it pleased them. It <i>did</i> please Faith, but Una
-felt a secret, bitter humiliation because they never learned to do anything.
-The other girls in her class at school could cook and sew and knit; she only
-was a little ignoramus.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry suggested that they go exploring; so they went lingeringly through the
-fir grove, picking up Carl on the way, who was on his knees in the dripping
-grass studying his darling ants. Beyond the grove they came out in Mr.
-Taylor&rsquo;s pasture field, sprinkled over with the white ghosts of
-dandelions; in a remote corner was an old tumbledown barn, where Mr. Taylor
-sometimes stored his surplus hay crop but which was never used for any other
-purpose. Thither the Meredith children trooped, and prowled about the ground
-floor for several minutes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was that?&rdquo; whispered Una suddenly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all listened. There was a faint but distinct rustle in the hayloft above.
-The Merediths looked at each other.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something up there,&rdquo; breathed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going up to see what it is,&rdquo; said Jerry resolutely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; begged Una, catching his arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll all go, too, then,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The whole four climbed the shaky ladder, Jerry and Faith quite dauntless, Una
-pale from fright, and Carl rather absent-mindedly speculating on the
-possibility of finding a bat up in the loft. He longed to see a bat in
-daylight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When they stepped off the ladder they saw what had made the rustle and the
-sight struck them dumb for a few moments.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a little nest in the hay a girl was curled up, looking as if she had just
-wakened from sleep. When she saw them she stood up, rather shakily, as it
-seemed, and in the bright sunlight that streamed through the cobwebbed window
-behind her, they saw that her thin, sunburned face was very pale under its tan.
-She had two braids of lank, thick, tow-coloured hair and very odd
-eyes&mdash;&ldquo;white eyes,&rdquo; the manse children thought, as she stared
-at them half defiantly, half piteously. They were really of so pale a blue that
-they did seem almost white, especially when contrasted with the narrow black
-ring that circled the iris. She was barefooted and bareheaded, and was clad in
-a faded, ragged, old plaid dress, much too short and tight for her. As for
-years, she might have been almost any age, judging from her wizened little
-face, but her height seemed to be somewhere in the neighbourhood of twelve.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who are you?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girl looked about her as if seeking a way of escape. Then she seemed to
-give in with a little shiver of despair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m Mary Vance,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where&rsquo;d you come from?&rdquo; pursued Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary, instead of replying, suddenly sat, or fell, down on the hay and began to
-cry. Instantly Faith had flung herself down beside her and put her arm around
-the thin, shaking shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You stop bothering her,&rdquo; she commanded Jerry. Then she hugged the
-waif. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t cry, dear. Just tell us what&rsquo;s the matter.
-<i>We&rsquo;re</i> friends.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so&mdash;so&mdash;hungry,&rdquo; wailed Mary. &ldquo;I&mdash;I
-hain&rsquo;t had a thing to eat since Thursday morning, &lsquo;cept a little
-water from the brook out there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The manse children gazed at each other in horror. Faith sprang up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You come right up to the manse and get something to eat before you say
-another word.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary shrank.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;I can&rsquo;t. What will your pa and ma say? Besides,
-they&rsquo;d send me back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve no mother, and father won&rsquo;t bother about you. Neither
-will Aunt Martha. Come, I say.&rdquo; Faith stamped her foot impatiently. Was
-this queer girl going to insist on starving to death almost at their very door?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary yielded. She was so weak that she could hardly climb down the ladder, but
-somehow they got her down and over the field and into the manse kitchen. Aunt
-Martha, muddling through her Saturday cooking, took no notice of her. Faith and
-Una flew to the pantry and ransacked it for such eatables as it
-contained&mdash;some &ldquo;ditto,&rdquo; bread, butter, milk and a doubtful
-pie. Mary Vance attacked the food ravenously and uncritically, while the manse
-children stood around and watched her. Jerry noticed that she had a pretty
-mouth and very nice, even, white teeth. Faith decided, with secret horror, that
-Mary had not one stitch on her except that ragged, faded dress. Una was full of
-pure pity, Carl of amused wonder, and all of them of curiosity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now come out to the graveyard and tell us about yourself,&rdquo; ordered
-Faith, when Mary&rsquo;s appetite showed signs of failing her. Mary was now
-nothing loath. Food had restored her natural vivacity and unloosed her by no
-means reluctant tongue.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You won&rsquo;t tell your pa or anybody if I tell you?&rdquo; she
-stipulated, when she was enthroned on Mr. Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone. Opposite
-her the manse children lined up on another. Here was spice and mystery and
-adventure. Something <i>had</i> happened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, we won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cross your hearts?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cross our hearts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ve run away. I was living with Mrs. Wiley over-harbour. Do
-you know Mrs. Wiley?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you don&rsquo;t want to know her. She&rsquo;s an awful woman. My,
-how I hate her! She worked me to death and wouldn&rsquo;t give me half enough
-to eat, and she used to larrup me &lsquo;most every day. Look a-here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary rolled up her ragged sleeves, and held up her scrawny arms and thin hands,
-chapped almost to rawness. They were black with bruises. The manse children
-shivered. Faith flushed crimson with indignation. Una&rsquo;s blue eyes filled
-with tears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She licked me Wednesday night with a stick,&rdquo; said Mary,
-indifferently. &ldquo;It was &lsquo;cause I let the cow kick over a pail of
-milk. How&rsquo;d I know the darn old cow was going to kick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A not unpleasant thrill ran over her listeners. They would never dream of using
-such dubious words, but it was rather titivating to hear someone else use
-them&mdash;and a girl, at that. Certainly this Mary Vance was an interesting
-creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t blame you for running away,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I didn&rsquo;t run away &lsquo;cause she licked me. A licking was
-all in the day&rsquo;s work with me. I was darn well used to it. Nope,
-I&rsquo;d meant to run away for a week &lsquo;cause I&rsquo;d found out that
-Mrs. Wiley was going to rent her farm and go to Lowbridge to live and give me
-to a cousin of hers up Charlottetown way. I wasn&rsquo;t going to stand for
-<i>that</i>. She was a worse sort than Mrs. Wiley even. Mrs. Wiley lent me to her for
-a month last summer and I&rsquo;d rather live with the devil himself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sensation number two. But Una looked doubtful.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I made up my mind I&rsquo;d beat it. I had seventy cents saved up
-that Mrs. John Crawford give me in the spring for planting potatoes for her.
-Mrs. Wiley didn&rsquo;t know about it. She was away visiting her cousin when I
-planted them. I thought I&rsquo;d sneak up here to the Glen and buy a ticket to
-Charlottetown and try to get work there. I&rsquo;m a hustler, let me tell you.
-There ain&rsquo;t a lazy bone in <i>my</i> body. So I lit out Thursday morning
-&lsquo;fore Mrs. Wiley was up and walked to the Glen&mdash;six miles. And when
-I got to the station I found I&rsquo;d lost my money. Dunno how&mdash;dunno
-where. Anyhow, it was gone. I didn&rsquo;t know what to do. If I went back to
-old Lady Wiley she&rsquo;d take the hide off me. So I went and hid in that old
-barn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what will you do now?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dunno. I s&rsquo;pose I&rsquo;ll have to go back and take my medicine.
-Now that I&rsquo;ve got some grub in my stomach I guess I can stand it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But there was fear behind the bravado in Mary&rsquo;s eyes. Una suddenly
-slipped from the one tombstone to the other and put her arm about Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go back. Just stay here with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;ll hunt me up,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s
-likely she&rsquo;s on my trail before this. I might stay here till she finds
-me, I s&rsquo;pose, if your folks don&rsquo;t mind. I was a darn fool ever to
-think of skipping out. She&rsquo;d run a weasel to earth. But I was so
-misrebul.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary&rsquo;s voice quivered, but she was ashamed of showing her weakness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hain&rsquo;t had the life of a dog for these four years,&rdquo; she
-explained defiantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve been four years with Mrs. Wiley?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yip. She took me out of the asylum over in Hopetown when I was
-eight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s the same place Mrs. Blythe came from,&rdquo; exclaimed
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was two years in the asylum. I was put there when I was six. My ma had
-hung herself and my pa had cut his throat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Holy cats! Why?&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Booze,&rdquo; said Mary laconically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you&rsquo;ve no relations?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not a darn one that I know of. Must have had some once, though. I was
-called after half a dozen of them. My full name is Mary Martha Lucilla Moore
-Ball Vance. Can you beat that? My grandfather was a rich man. I&rsquo;ll bet he
-was richer than <i>your</i> grandfather. But pa drunk it all up and ma, she did her
-part. <i>They</i> used to beat me, too. Laws, I&rsquo;ve been licked so much I kind of
-like it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary tossed her head. She divined that the manse children were pitying her for
-her many stripes and she did not want pity. She wanted to be envied. She looked
-gaily about her. Her strange eyes, now that the dullness of famine was removed
-from them, were brilliant. She would show these youngsters what a personage she
-was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been sick an awful lot,&rdquo; she said proudly.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s not many kids could have come through what I have.
-I&rsquo;ve had scarlet fever and measles and ersipelas and mumps and whooping
-cough and pewmonia.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Were you ever fatally sick?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Mary doubtfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course she wasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; scoffed Jerry. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re
-fatally sick you die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, well, I never died exactly,&rdquo; said Mary, &ldquo;but I come
-blamed near it once. They thought I was dead and they were getting ready to lay
-me out when I up and come to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it like to be half dead?&rdquo; asked Jerry curiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Like nothing. I didn&rsquo;t know it for days afterwards. It was when I
-had the pewmonia. Mrs. Wiley wouldn&rsquo;t have the doctor&mdash;said she
-wasn&rsquo;t going to no such expense for a home girl. Old Aunt Christina
-MacAllister nursed me with poultices. She brung me round. But sometimes I wish
-I&rsquo;d just died the other half and done with it. I&rsquo;d been better
-off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you went to heaven I s&rsquo;pose you would,&rdquo; said Faith,
-rather doubtfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what other place is there to go to?&rdquo; demanded Mary in a
-puzzled voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s hell, you know,&rdquo; said Una, dropping her voice and
-hugging Mary to lessen the awfulness of the suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hell? What&rsquo;s that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it&rsquo;s where the devil lives,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve heard of him&mdash;you spoke about him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, but I didn&rsquo;t know he lived anywhere. I thought he just
-roamed round. Mr. Wiley used to mention hell when he was alive. He was always
-telling folks to go there. I thought it was some place over in New Brunswick
-where he come from.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hell is an awful place,&rdquo; said Faith, with the dramatic enjoyment
-that is born of telling dreadful things. &ldquo;Bad people go there when they
-die and burn in fire for ever and ever and ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who told you that?&rdquo; demanded Mary incredulously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s in the Bible. And Mr. Isaac Crothers at Maywater told us,
-too, in Sunday School. He was an elder and a pillar in the church and knew all
-about it. But you needn&rsquo;t worry. If you&rsquo;re good you&rsquo;ll go to
-heaven and if you&rsquo;re bad I guess you&rsquo;d rather go to hell.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Mary positively. &ldquo;No matter how bad
-I was I wouldn&rsquo;t want to be burned and burned. <i>I</i> know what
-it&rsquo;s like. I picked up a red hot poker once by accident. What must you do
-to be good?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must go to church and Sunday School and read your Bible and pray
-every night and give to missions,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It sounds like a large order,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Anything
-else?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must ask God to forgive the sins you&rsquo;ve committed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I&rsquo;ve never com&mdash;committed any,&rdquo; said Mary.
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s a sin any way?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, you must have. Everybody does. Did you never tell a
-lie?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heaps of &lsquo;em,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a dreadful sin,&rdquo; said Una solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you mean to tell me,&rdquo; demanded Mary, &ldquo;that I&rsquo;d be
-sent to hell for telling a lie now and then? Why, I <i>had</i> to. Mr. Wiley would
-have broken every bone in my body one time if I hadn&rsquo;t told him a lie.
-Lies have saved me many a whack, I can tell you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una sighed. Here were too many difficulties for her to solve. She shuddered as
-she thought of being cruelly whipped. Very likely she would have lied too. She
-squeezed Mary&rsquo;s little calloused hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is that the only dress you&rsquo;ve got?&rdquo; asked Faith, whose
-joyous nature refused to dwell on disagreeable subjects.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I just put on this dress because it was no good,&rdquo; cried Mary
-flushing. &ldquo;Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;d bought my clothes and I wasn&rsquo;t going
-to be beholden to her for anything. And I&rsquo;m honest. If I was going to run
-away I wasn&rsquo;t going to take what belong to <i>her</i> that was worth anything.
-When I grow up I&rsquo;m going to have a blue sating dress. Your own clothes
-don&rsquo;t look so stylish. I thought ministers&rsquo; children were always
-dressed up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was plain that Mary had a temper and was sensitive on some points. But there
-was a queer, wild charm about her which captivated them all. She was taken to
-Rainbow Valley that afternoon and introduced to the Blythes as &ldquo;a friend
-of ours from over-harbour who is visiting us.&rdquo; The Blythes accepted her
-unquestioningly, perhaps because she was fairly respectable now. After
-dinner&mdash;through which Aunt Martha had mumbled and Mr. Meredith had been in
-a state of semi-unconsciousness while brooding his Sunday sermon&mdash;Faith
-had prevailed on Mary to put on one of her dresses, as well as certain other
-articles of clothing. With her hair neatly braided Mary passed muster tolerably
-well. She was an acceptable playmate, for she knew several new and exciting
-games, and her conversation lacked not spice. In fact, some of her expressions
-made Nan and Di look at her rather askance. They were not quite sure what their
-mother would have thought of her, but they knew quite well what Susan would.
-However, she was a visitor at the manse, so she must be all right.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When bedtime came there was the problem of where Mary should sleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t put her in the spare room, you know,&rdquo; said Faith
-perplexedly to Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t got anything in my head,&rdquo; cried Mary in an injured
-tone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I didn&rsquo;t mean <i>that</i>,&rdquo; protested Faith. &ldquo;The spare
-room is all torn up. The mice have gnawed a big hole in the feather tick and
-made a nest in it. We never found it out till Aunt Martha put the Rev. Mr.
-Fisher from Charlottetown there to sleep last week. <i>He</i> soon found it out. Then
-father had to give him his bed and sleep on the study lounge. Aunt Martha
-hasn&rsquo;t had time to fix the spare room bed up yet, so she says; so <i>nobody</i>
-can sleep there, no matter how clean their heads are. And our room is so small,
-and the bed so small you can&rsquo;t sleep with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can go back to the hay in the old barn for the night if you&rsquo;ll
-lend me a quilt,&rdquo; said Mary philosophically. &ldquo;It was kind of chilly
-last night, but &lsquo;cept for that I&rsquo;ve had worse beds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, you mustn&rsquo;t do that,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve thought of a plan, Faith. You know that little trestle bed in
-the garret room, with the old mattress on it, that the last minister left
-there? Let&rsquo;s take up the spare room bedclothes and make Mary a bed there.
-You won&rsquo;t mind sleeping in the garret, will you, Mary? It&rsquo;s just
-above our room.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any place&rsquo;ll do me. Laws, I never had a decent place to sleep in
-my life. I slept in the loft over the kitchen at Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;s. The roof
-leaked rain in the summer and the snow druv in in winter. My bed was a straw
-tick on the floor. You won&rsquo;t find me a mite huffy about where <i>I</i>
-sleep.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The manse garret was a long, low, shadowy place, with one gable end partitioned
-off. Here a bed was made up for Mary of the dainty hemstitched sheets and
-embroidered spread which Cecilia Meredith had once so proudly made for her
-spare-room, and which still survived Aunt Martha&rsquo;s uncertain washings.
-The good nights were said and silence fell over the manse. Una was just falling
-asleep when she heard a sound in the room just above that made her sit up
-suddenly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen, Faith&mdash;Mary&rsquo;s crying,&rdquo; she whispered. Faith
-replied not, being already asleep. Una slipped out of bed, and made her way in
-her little white gown down the hall and up the garret stairs. The creaking
-floor gave ample notice of her coming, and when she reached the corner room all
-was moonlit silence and the trestle bed showed only a hump in the middle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary,&rdquo; whispered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no response.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una crept close to the bed and pulled at the spread. &ldquo;Mary, I know you
-are crying. I heard you. Are you lonesome?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary suddenly appeared to view but said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me in beside you. I&rsquo;m cold,&rdquo; said Una shivering in the
-chilly air, for the little garret window was open and the keen breath of the
-north shore at night blew in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary moved over and Una snuggled down beside her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Now</i> you won&rsquo;t be lonesome. We shouldn&rsquo;t have left you here
-alone the first night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wasn&rsquo;t lonesome,&rdquo; sniffed Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What were you crying for then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I just got to thinking of things when I was here alone. I thought of
-having to go back to Mrs. Wiley&mdash;and of being licked for running
-away&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;and of going to hell for telling lies. It all
-worried me something scandalous.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said poor Una in distress. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe
-God will send you to hell for telling lies when you didn&rsquo;t know it was
-wrong. He <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i>. Why, He&rsquo;s kind and good. Of course, you
-mustn&rsquo;t tell any more now that you know it&rsquo;s wrong.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I can&rsquo;t tell lies what&rsquo;s to become of me?&rdquo; said
-Mary with a sob. &ldquo;<i>You</i> don&rsquo;t understand. You don&rsquo;t know
-anything about it. You&rsquo;ve got a home and a kind father&mdash;though it
-does seem to me that he isn&rsquo;t more&rsquo;n about half there. But anyway
-he doesn&rsquo;t lick you, and you get enough to eat such as it is&mdash;though
-that old aunt of yours doesn&rsquo;t know <i>anything</i> about cooking. Why, this is
-the first day I ever remember of feeling &lsquo;sif I&rsquo;d enough to eat.
-I&rsquo;ve been knocked about all of my life, &lsquo;cept for the two years I
-was at the asylum. They didn&rsquo;t lick me there and it wasn&rsquo;t too bad,
-though the matron was cross. She always looked ready to bite my head off a
-nail. But Mrs. Wiley is a holy terror, that&rsquo;s what <i>she</i> is, and I&rsquo;m
-just scared stiff when I think of going back to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps you won&rsquo;t have to. Perhaps we&rsquo;ll be able to think of
-a way out. Let&rsquo;s both ask God to keep you from having to go back to Mrs.
-Wiley. You say your prayers, don&rsquo;t you Mary?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, I always go over an old rhyme &lsquo;fore I get into
-bed,&rdquo; said Mary indifferently. &ldquo;I never thought of asking for
-anything in particular though. Nobody in this world ever bothered themselves
-about me so I didn&rsquo;t s&rsquo;pose God would. He <i>might</i> take more trouble
-for you, seeing you&rsquo;re a minister&rsquo;s daughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;d take every bit as much trouble for you, Mary, I&rsquo;m
-sure,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;It doesn&rsquo;t matter whose child you are. You
-just ask Him&mdash;and I will, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; agreed Mary. &ldquo;It won&rsquo;t do any harm if it
-doesn&rsquo;t do much good. If you knew Mrs. Wiley as well as I do you
-wouldn&rsquo;t think God would want to meddle with her. Anyhow, I won&rsquo;t
-cry any more about it. This is a big sight better&rsquo;n last night down in
-that old barn, with the mice running about. Look at the Four Winds light.
-Ain&rsquo;t it pretty?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is the only window we can see it from,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;I
-love to watch it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you? So do I. I could see it from the Wiley loft and it was the only
-comfort I had. When I was all sore from being licked I&rsquo;d watch it and
-forget about the places that hurt. I&rsquo;d think of the ships sailing away
-and away from it and wish I was on one of them sailing far away too&mdash;away
-from everything. On winter nights when it didn&rsquo;t shine, I just felt real
-lonesome. Say, Una, what makes all you folks so kind to me when I&rsquo;m just
-a stranger?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because it&rsquo;s right to be. The bible tells us to be kind to
-everybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does it? Well, I guess most folks don&rsquo;t mind it much then. I never
-remember of any one being kind to me before&mdash;true&rsquo;s you live I
-don&rsquo;t. Say, Una, ain&rsquo;t them shadows on the walls pretty? They look
-just like a flock of little dancing birds. And say, Una, I like all you folks
-and them Blythe boys and Di, but I don&rsquo;t like that Nan. She&rsquo;s a
-proud one.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, Mary, she isn&rsquo;t a bit proud,&rdquo; said Una eagerly.
-&ldquo;Not a single bit.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t tell me. Any one that holds her head like that <i>is</i> proud. I
-don&rsquo;t like her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>We</i> all like her very much.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I s&rsquo;pose you like her better&rsquo;n me?&rdquo; said Mary
-jealously. &ldquo;Do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Mary&mdash;we&rsquo;ve known her for weeks and we&rsquo;ve only
-known you a few hours,&rdquo; stammered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you do like her better then?&rdquo; said Mary in a rage. &ldquo;All
-right! Like her all you want to. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t care. <i>I</i> can get
-along without you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She flung herself over against the wall of the garret with a slam.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said Una, pushing a tender arm over Mary&rsquo;s
-uncompromising back, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t talk like that. I <i>do</i> like you ever so
-much. And you make me feel so bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No answer. Presently Una gave a sob. Instantly Mary squirmed around again and
-engulfed Una in a bear&rsquo;s hug.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hush up,&rdquo; she ordered. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go crying over what I
-said. I was as mean as the devil to talk that way. I orter to be skinned
-alive&mdash;and you all so good to me. I should think you <i>would</i> like any one
-better&rsquo;n me. I deserve every licking I ever got. Hush, now. If you cry
-any more I&rsquo;ll go and walk right down to the harbour in this night-dress
-and drown myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This terrible threat made Una choke back her sobs. Her tears were wiped away by
-Mary with the lace frill of the spare-room pillow and forgiver and forgiven
-cuddled down together again, harmony restored, to watch the shadows of the vine
-leaves on the moonlit wall until they fell asleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And in the study below Rev. John Meredith walked the floor with rapt face and
-shining eyes, thinking out his message of the morrow, and knew not that under
-his own roof there was a little forlorn soul, stumbling in darkness and
-ignorance, beset by terror and compassed about with difficulties too great for
-it to grapple in its unequal struggle with a big indifferent world.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap06"></a>CHAPTER VI.<br />
-MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-The manse children took Mary Vance to church with them the next day. At first
-Mary objected to the idea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t you go to church over-harbour?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You bet. Mrs. Wiley never troubled church much, but I went every Sunday
-I could get off. I was mighty thankful to go to some place where I could sit
-down for a spell. But I can&rsquo;t go to church in this old ragged
-dress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This difficulty was removed by Faith offering the loan of her second best
-dress.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s faded a little and two of the buttons are off, but I guess
-it&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll sew the buttons on in a jiffy,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not on Sunday,&rdquo; said Una, shocked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sure. The better the day the better the deed. You just gimme a needle
-and thread and look the other way if you&rsquo;re squeamish.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s school boots, and an old black velvet cap that had once been
-Cecilia Meredith&rsquo;s, completed Mary&rsquo;s costume, and to church she
-went. Her behaviour was quite conventional, and though some wondered who the
-shabby little girl with the manse children was she did not attract much
-attention. She listened to the sermon with outward decorum and joined lustily
-in the singing. She had, it appeared, a clear, strong voice and a good ear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;His blood can make the <i>violets</i> clean,&rdquo; carolled Mary blithely.
-Mrs. Jimmy Milgrave, whose pew was just in front of the manse pew, turned
-suddenly and looked the child over from top to toe. Mary, in a mere superfluity
-of naughtiness, stuck out her tongue at Mrs. Milgrave, much to Una&rsquo;s
-horror.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it,&rdquo; she declared after church.
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;d she want to stare at me like that for? Such manners!
-I&rsquo;m <i>glad</i> stuck my tongue out at her. I wish I&rsquo;d stuck it farther
-out. Say, I saw Rob MacAllister from over-harbour there. Wonder if he&rsquo;ll
-tell Mrs. Wiley on me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No Mrs. Wiley appeared, however, and in a few day the children forgot to look
-for her. Mary was apparently a fixture at the manse. But she refused to go to
-school with the others.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nope. I&rsquo;ve finished my education,&rdquo; she said, when Faith
-urged her to go. &ldquo;I went to school four winters since I come to Mrs.
-Wiley&rsquo;s and I&rsquo;ve had all I want of <i>that</i>. I&rsquo;m sick and tired
-of being everlastingly jawed at &lsquo;cause I didn&rsquo;t get my home-lessons
-done. <i>I&rsquo;d</i> no time to do home-lessons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Our teacher won&rsquo;t jaw you. He is awfully nice,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I ain&rsquo;t going. I can read and write and cipher up to
-fractions. That&rsquo;s all I want. You fellows go and I&rsquo;ll stay home.
-You needn&rsquo;t be scared I&rsquo;ll steal anything. I swear I&rsquo;m
-honest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary employed herself while the others were at school in cleaning up the manse.
-In a few days it was a different place. Floors were swept, furniture dusted,
-everything straightened out. She mended the spare-room bed-tick, she sewed on
-missing buttons, she patched clothes neatly, she even invaded the study with
-broom and dustpan and ordered Mr. Meredith out while she put it to rights. But
-there was one department with which Aunt Martha refused to let her interfere.
-Aunt Martha might be deaf and half blind and very childish, but she was
-resolved to keep the commissariat in her own hands, in spite of all
-Mary&rsquo;s wiles and stratagems.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can tell you if old Martha&rsquo;d let <i>me</i> cook you&rsquo;d have some
-decent meals,&rdquo; she told the manse children indignantly.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;d be no more &lsquo;ditto&rsquo;&mdash;and no more lumpy
-porridge and blue milk either. What <i>does</i> she do with all the cream?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She gives it to the cat. He&rsquo;s hers, you know,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to <i>cat</i> her,&rdquo; exclaimed Mary bitterly.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no use for cats anyhow. They belong to the old Nick. You can
-tell that by their eyes. Well, if old Martha won&rsquo;t, she won&rsquo;t, I
-s&rsquo;pose. But it gits on my nerves to see good vittles spoiled.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When school came out they always went to Rainbow Valley. Mary refused to play
-in the graveyard. She declared she was afraid of ghosts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no such thing as ghosts,&rdquo; declared Jem Blythe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, ain&rsquo;t there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you ever see any?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hundreds of &lsquo;em,&rdquo; said Mary promptly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are they like?&rdquo; said Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Awful-looking. Dressed all in white with skellington hands and
-heads,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did you do?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Run like the devil,&rdquo; said Mary. Then she caught Walter&rsquo;s
-eyes and blushed. Mary was a good deal in awe of Walter. She declared to the
-manse girls that his eyes made her nervous.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think of all the lies I&rsquo;ve ever told when I look into
-them,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I wish I hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was Mary&rsquo;s favourite. When he took her to the attic at Ingleside and
-showed her the museum of curios that Captain Jim Boyd had bequeathed to him she
-was immensely pleased and flattered. She also won Carl&rsquo;s heart entirely
-by her interest in his beetles and ants. It could not be denied that Mary got
-on rather better with the boys than with the girls. She quarrelled bitterly
-with Nan Blythe the second day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your mother is a witch,&rdquo; she told Nan scornfully.
-&ldquo;Red-haired women are always witches.&rdquo; Then she and Faith fell out
-about the rooster. Mary said its tail was too short. Faith angrily retorted
-that she guessed God know what length to make a rooster&rsquo;s tail. They did
-not &ldquo;speak&rdquo; for a day over this. Mary treated Una&rsquo;s hairless,
-one-eyed doll with consideration; but when Una showed her other prized
-treasure&mdash;a picture of an angel carrying a baby, presumably to heaven,
-Mary declared that it looked too much like a ghost for her. Una crept away to
-her room and cried over this, but Mary hunted her out, hugged her repentantly
-and implored forgiveness. No one could keep up a quarrel long with
-Mary&mdash;not even Nan, who was rather prone to hold grudges and never quite
-forgave the insult to her mother. Mary was jolly. She could and did tell the
-most thrilling ghost stories. Rainbow Valley seances were undeniably more
-exciting after Mary came. She learned to play on the jew&rsquo;s-harp and soon
-eclipsed Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never struck anything yet I couldn&rsquo;t do if I put my mind to
-it,&rdquo; she declared. Mary seldom lost a chance of tooting her own horn. She
-taught them how to make &ldquo;blow-bags&rdquo; out of the thick leaves of the
-&ldquo;live-forever&rdquo; that flourished in the old Bailey garden, she
-initiated them into the toothsome qualities of the &ldquo;sours&rdquo; that
-grew in the niches of the graveyard dyke, and she could make the most wonderful
-shadow pictures on the walls with her long, flexible fingers. And when they all
-went picking gum in Rainbow Valley Mary always got &ldquo;the biggest
-chew&rdquo; and bragged about it. There were times when they hated her and
-times when they loved her. But at all times they found her interesting. So they
-submitted quite meekly to her bossing, and by the end of a fortnight had come
-to feel that she must always have been with them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the queerest thing that Mrs. Wiley hain&rsquo;t been after
-me,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t understand it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe she isn&rsquo;t going to bother about you at all,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;Then you can just go on staying here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This house ain&rsquo;t hardly big enough for me and old Martha,&rdquo;
-said Mary darkly. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a very fine thing to have enough to
-eat&mdash;I&rsquo;ve often wondered what it would be like&mdash;but I&rsquo;m
-p&rsquo;ticler about my cooking. And Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;ll be here yet.
-<i>She&rsquo;s</i> got a rod in pickle for me all right. I don&rsquo;t think about it
-so much in daytime but say, girls, up there in that garret at night I git to
-thinking and thinking of it, till I just almost wish she&rsquo;d come and have
-it over with. I dunno&rsquo;s one real good whipping would be much
-worse&rsquo;n all the dozen I&rsquo;ve lived through in my mind ever since I
-run away. Were any of you ever licked?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not,&rdquo; said Faith indignantly. &ldquo;Father would
-never do such a thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know you&rsquo;re alive,&rdquo; said Mary with a sigh
-half of envy, half of superiority. &ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know what I&rsquo;ve
-come through. And I s&rsquo;pose the Blythes were never licked either?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No-o-o, I guess not. But I <i>think</i> they were sometimes spanked when they
-were small.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A spanking doesn&rsquo;t amount to anything,&rdquo; said Mary
-contemptuously. &ldquo;If my folks had just spanked me I&rsquo;d have thought
-they were petting me. Well, it ain&rsquo;t a fair world. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind
-taking my share of wallopings but I&rsquo;ve had a darn sight too many.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t right to say that word, Mary,&rdquo; said Una
-reproachfully. &ldquo;You promised me you wouldn&rsquo;t say it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;G&rsquo;way,&rdquo; responded Mary. &ldquo;If you knew some of the words
-I <i>could</i> say if I liked you wouldn&rsquo;t make such a fuss over darn. And you
-know very well I hain&rsquo;t ever told any lies since I come here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about all those ghosts you said you saw?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary blushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That was diff&rsquo;runt,&rdquo; she said defiantly. &ldquo;I knew you
-wouldn&rsquo;t believe them yarns and I didn&rsquo;t intend you to. And I
-really did see something queer one night when I was passing the over-harbour
-graveyard, true&rsquo;s you live. I dunno whether &lsquo;twas a ghost or Sandy
-Crawford&rsquo;s old white nag, but it looked blamed queer and I tell you I
-scooted at the rate of no man&rsquo;s business.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap07"></a>CHAPTER VII.<br />
-A FISHY EPISODE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Rilla Blythe walked proudly, and perhaps a little primly, through the main
-&ldquo;street&rdquo; of the Glen and up the manse hill, carefully carrying a
-small basketful of early strawberries, which Susan had coaxed into lusciousness
-in one of the sunny nooks of Ingleside. Susan had charged Rilla to give the
-basket to nobody except Aunt Martha or Mr. Meredith, and Rilla, very proud of
-being entrusted with such an errand, was resolved to carry out her instructions
-to the letter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan had dressed her daintily in a white, starched, and embroidered dress,
-with sash of blue and beaded slippers. Her long ruddy curls were sleek and
-round, and Susan had let her put on her best hat, out of compliment to the
-manse. It was a somewhat elaborate affair, wherein Susan&rsquo;s taste had had
-more to say than Anne&rsquo;s, and Rilla&rsquo;s small soul gloried in its
-splendours of silk and lace and flowers. She was very conscious of her hat, and
-I am afraid she strutted up the manse hill. The strut, or the hat, or both, got
-on the nerves of Mary Vance, who was swinging on the lawn gate. Mary&rsquo;s
-temper was somewhat ruffled just then, into the bargain. Aunt Martha had
-refused to let her peel the potatoes and had ordered her out of the kitchen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yah! You&rsquo;ll bring the potatoes to the table with strips of skin
-hanging to them and half boiled as usual! My, but it&rsquo;ll be nice to go to
-your funeral,&rdquo; shrieked Mary. She went out of the kitchen, giving the
-door such a bang that even Aunt Martha heard it, and Mr. Meredith in his study
-felt the vibration and thought absently that there must have been a slight
-earthquake shock. Then he went on with his sermon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary slipped from the gate and confronted the spick-and-span damsel of
-Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What you got there?&rdquo; she demanded, trying to take the basket.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rilla resisted. &ldquo;It&rsquo;th for Mithter Meredith,&rdquo; she lisped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give it to me. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> give it to him,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Thuthan thaid that I wathn&rsquo;t to give it to anybody but Mithter
-Mer&rsquo;dith or Aunt Martha,&rdquo; insisted Rilla.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary eyed her sourly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You think you&rsquo;re something, don&rsquo;t you, all dressed up like a
-doll! Look at me. My dress is all rags and <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t care! I&rsquo;d
-rather be ragged than a doll baby. Go home and tell them to put you in a glass
-case. Look at me&mdash;look at me&mdash;look at me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary executed a wild dance around the dismayed and bewildered Rilla, flirting
-her ragged skirt and vociferating &ldquo;Look at me&mdash;look at me&rdquo;
-until poor Rilla was dizzy. But as the latter tried to edge away towards the
-gate Mary pounced on her again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You give me that basket,&rdquo; she ordered with a grimace. Mary was
-past mistress in the art of &ldquo;making faces.&rdquo; She could give her
-countenance a most grotesque and unearthly appearance out of which her strange,
-brilliant, white eyes gleamed with weird effect.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; gasped Rilla, frightened but staunch. &ldquo;You
-let me go, Mary Vanth.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary let go for a minute and looked around her. Just inside the gate was a
-small &ldquo;flake,&rdquo; on which a half a dozen large codfish were drying.
-One of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s parishioners had presented him with them one day,
-perhaps in lieu of the subscription he was supposed to pay to the stipend and
-never did. Mr. Meredith had thanked him and then forgotten all about the fish,
-which would have promptly spoiled had not the indefatigable Mary prepared them
-for drying and rigged up the &ldquo;flake&rdquo; herself on which to dry them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had a diabolical inspiration. She flew to the &ldquo;flake&rdquo; and
-seized the largest fish there&mdash;a huge, flat thing, nearly as big as
-herself. With a whoop she swooped down on the terrified Rilla, brandishing her
-weird missile. Rilla&rsquo;s courage gave way. To be lambasted with a dried
-codfish was such an unheard-of thing that Rilla could not face it. With a
-shriek she dropped her basket and fled. The beautiful berries, which Susan had
-so tenderly selected for the minister, rolled in a rosy torrent over the dusty
-road and were trodden on by the flying feet of pursuer and pursued. The basket
-and contents were no longer in Mary&rsquo;s mind. She thought only of the
-delight of giving Rilla Blythe the scare of her life. She would teach <i>her</i> to
-come giving herself airs because of her fine clothes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rilla flew down the hill and along the street. Terror lent wings to her feet,
-and she just managed to keep ahead of Mary, who was somewhat hampered by her
-own laughter, but who had breath enough to give occasional blood-curdling
-whoops as she ran, flourishing her codfish in the air. Through the Glen street
-they swept, while everybody ran to the windows and gates to see them. Mary felt
-she was making a tremendous sensation and enjoyed it. Rilla, blind with terror
-and spent of breath, felt that she could run no longer. In another instant that
-terrible girl would be on her with the codfish. At this point the poor mite
-stumbled and fell into the mud-puddle at the end of the street just as Miss
-Cornelia came out of Carter Flagg&rsquo;s store.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia took the whole situation in at a glance. So did Mary. The latter
-stopped short in her mad career and before Miss Cornelia could speak she had
-whirled around and was running up as fast as she had run down. Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s lips tightened ominously, but she knew it was no use to think
-of chasing her. So she picked up poor, sobbing, dishevelled Rilla instead and
-took her home. Rilla was heart-broken. Her dress and slippers and hat were
-ruined and her six year old pride had received terrible bruises.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan, white with indignation, heard Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s story of Mary
-Vance&rsquo;s exploit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, the hussy&mdash;oh, the littly hussy!&rdquo; she said, as she
-carried Rilla away for purification and comfort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This thing has gone far enough, Anne dearie,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-resolutely. &ldquo;Something must be done. <i>Who</i> is this creature who is staying
-at the manse and where does she come from?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I understood she was a little girl from over-harbour who was visiting at
-the manse,&rdquo; answered Anne, who saw the comical side of the codfish chase
-and secretly thought Rilla was rather vain and needed a lesson or two.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know all the over-harbour families who come to our church and that imp
-doesn&rsquo;t belong to any of them,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She
-is almost in rags and when she goes to church she wears Faith Meredith&rsquo;s
-old clothes. There&rsquo;s some mystery here, and I&rsquo;m going to
-investigate it, since it seems nobody else will. I believe she was at the
-bottom of their goings-on in Warren Mead&rsquo;s spruce bush the other day. Did
-you hear of their frightening his mother into a fit?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. I knew Gilbert had been called to see her, but I did not hear what
-the trouble was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you know she has a weak heart. And one day last week, when she was
-all alone on the veranda, she heard the most awful shrieks of
-&lsquo;murder&rsquo; and &lsquo;help&rsquo; coming from the
-bush&mdash;positively frightful sounds, Anne dearie. Her heart gave out at
-once. Warren heard them himself at the barn, and went straight to the bush to
-investigate, and there he found all the manse children sitting on a fallen tree
-and screaming &lsquo;murder&rsquo; at the top of their lungs. They told him
-they were only in fun and didn&rsquo;t think anyone would hear them. They were
-just playing Indian ambush. Warren went back to the house and found his poor
-mother unconscious on the veranda.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan, who had returned, sniffed contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she was very far from being unconscious, Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and that you may tie to. I have been hearing of Amelia Warren&rsquo;s weak
-heart for forty years. She had it when she was twenty. She enjoys making a fuss
-and having the doctor, and any excuse will do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think Gilbert thought her attack very serious,&rdquo; said
-Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that may very well be,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But the
-matter has made an awful lot of talk and the Meads being Methodists makes it
-that much worse. What is going to become of those children? Sometimes I
-can&rsquo;t sleep at nights for thinking about them, Anne dearie. I really do
-question if they get enough to eat, even, for their father is so lost in dreams
-that he doesn&rsquo;t often remember he has a stomach, and that lazy old woman
-doesn&rsquo;t bother cooking what she ought. They are just running wild and now
-that school is closing they&rsquo;ll be worse than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They do have jolly times,&rdquo; said Anne, laughing over the
-recollections of some Rainbow Valley happenings that had come to her ears.
-&ldquo;And they are all brave and frank and loyal and truthful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a true word, Anne dearie, and when you come to think of all
-the trouble in the church those two tattling, deceitful youngsters of the last
-minister&rsquo;s made, I&rsquo;m inclined to overlook a good deal in the
-Merediths.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When all is said and done, Mrs. Dr. dear, they are very nice
-children,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;They have got plenty of original sin in
-them and that I will admit, but maybe it is just as well, for if they had not
-they might spoil from over-sweetness. Only I do think it is not proper for them
-to play in a graveyard and that I will maintain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But they really play quite quietly there,&rdquo; excused Anne.
-&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t run and yell as they do elsewhere. Such howls as drift
-up here from Rainbow Valley sometimes! Though I fancy my own small fry bear a
-valiant part in them. They had a sham battle there last night and had to
-&lsquo;roar&rsquo; themselves, because they had no artillery to do it, so Jem
-says. Jem is passing through the stage where all boys hanker to be
-soldiers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, thank goodness, he&rsquo;ll never be a soldier,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;I never approved of our boys going to that South African
-fracas. But it&rsquo;s over, and not likely anything of the kind will ever
-happen again. I think the world is getting more sensible. As for the Merediths,
-I&rsquo;ve said many a time and I say it again, if Mr. Meredith had a wife all
-would be well.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He called twice at the Kirks&rsquo; last week, so I am told,&rdquo; said
-Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia thoughtfully, &ldquo;as a rule, I
-don&rsquo;t approve of a minister marrying in his congregation. It generally
-spoils him. But in this case it would do no harm, for every one likes Elizabeth
-Kirk and nobody else is hankering for the job of stepmothering those
-youngsters. Even the Hill girls balk at that. They haven&rsquo;t been found
-laying traps for Mr. Meredith. Elizabeth would make him a good wife if he only
-thought so. But the trouble is, she really is homely and, Anne dearie, Mr.
-Meredith, abstracted as he is, has an eye for a good-looking woman, man-like.
-He isn&rsquo;t <i>so</i> other-worldly when it comes to that, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Elizabeth Kirk is a very nice person, but they do say that people have
-nearly frozen to death in her mother&rsquo;s spare-room bed before now, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan darkly. &ldquo;If I felt I had any right to express
-an opinion concerning such a solemn matter as a minister&rsquo;s marriage I
-would say that I think Elizabeth&rsquo;s cousin Sarah, over-harbour, would make
-Mr. Meredith a better wife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Sarah Kirk is a Methodist,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, much as if
-Susan had suggested a Hottentot as a manse bride.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She would likely turn Presbyterian if she married Mr. Meredith,&rdquo;
-retorted Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia shook her head. Evidently with her it was, once a Methodist,
-always a Methodist.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sarah Kirk is entirely out of the question,&rdquo; she said positively.
-&ldquo;And so is Emmeline Drew&mdash;though the Drews are all trying to make
-the match. They are literally throwing poor Emmeline at his head, and he
-hasn&rsquo;t the least idea of it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Emmeline Drew has no gumption, I must allow,&rdquo; said Susan.
-&ldquo;She is the kind of woman, Mrs. Dr. dear, who would put a hot-water
-bottle in your bed on a dog-night and then have her feelings hurt because you
-were not grateful. And her mother was a very poor housekeeper. Did you ever
-hear the story of her dishcloth? She lost her dishcloth one day. But the next
-day she found it. Oh, yes, Mrs. Dr. dear, she found it, in the goose at the
-dinner-table, mixed up with the stuffing. Do you think a woman like that would
-do for a minister&rsquo;s mother-in-law? I do not. But no doubt I would be
-better employed in mending little Jem&rsquo;s trousers than in talking gossip
-about my neighbours. He tore them something scandalous last night in Rainbow
-Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where is Walter?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is up to no good, I fear, Mrs. Dr. dear. He is in the attic writing
-something in an exercise book. And he has not done as well in arithmetic this
-term as he should, so the teacher tells me. Too well I know the reason why. He
-has been writing silly rhymes when he should have been doing his sums. I am
-afraid that boy is going to be a poet, Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a poet now, Susan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you take it real calm, Mrs. Dr. dear. I suppose it is the best
-way, when a person has the strength. I had an uncle who began by being a poet
-and ended up by being a tramp. Our family were dreadfully ashamed of
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t seem to think very highly of poets, Susan,&rdquo; said
-Anne, laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who does, Mrs. Dr. dear?&rdquo; asked Susan in genuine astonishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about Milton and Shakespeare? And the poets of the Bible?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They tell me Milton could not get along with his wife, and Shakespeare
-was no more than respectable by times. As for the Bible, of course things were
-different in those sacred days&mdash;although I never had a high opinion of
-King David, say what you will. I never knew any good to come of writing poetry,
-and I hope and pray that blessed boy will outgrow the tendency. If he does
-not&mdash;we must see what emulsion of cod-liver oil will do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap08"></a>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
-MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia descended upon the manse the next day and cross-questioned Mary,
-who, being a young person of considerable discernment and astuteness, told her
-story simple and truthfully, with an entire absence of complaint or bravado.
-Miss Cornelia was more favourably impressed than she had expected to be, but
-deemed it her duty to be severe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think,&rdquo; she said sternly, &ldquo;that you showed your
-gratitude to this family, who have been far too kind to you, by insulting and
-chasing one of their little friends as you did yesterday?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, it was rotten mean of me,&rdquo; admitted Mary easily. &ldquo;I
-dunno what possessed me. That old codfish seemed to come in so blamed handy.
-But I was awful sorry&mdash;I cried last night after I went to bed about it,
-honest I did. You ask Una if I didn&rsquo;t. I wouldn&rsquo;t tell her what for
-&lsquo;cause I was ashamed of it, and then she cried, too, because she was
-afraid someone had hurt my feelings. Laws, <i>I</i> ain&rsquo;t got any
-feelings to hurt worth speaking of. What worries me is why Mrs. Wiley
-hain&rsquo;t been hunting for me. It ain&rsquo;t like her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia herself thought it rather peculiar, but she merely admonished
-Mary sharply not to take any further liberties with the minister&rsquo;s
-codfish, and went to report progress at Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If the child&rsquo;s story is true the matter ought to be looked
-into,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I know something about that Wiley woman, believe
-<i>me</i>. Marshall used to be well acquainted with her when he lived over-harbour. I
-heard him say something last summer about her and a home child she
-had&mdash;likely this very Mary-creature. He said some one told him she was
-working the child to death and not half feeding and clothing it. You know, Anne
-dearie, it has always been my habit neither to make nor meddle with those
-over-harbour folks. But I shall send Marshall over to-morrow to find out the
-rights of this if he can. And <i>then</i> I&rsquo;ll speak to the minister. Mind you,
-Anne dearie, the Merediths found this girl literally starving in James
-Taylor&rsquo;s old hay barn. She had been there all night, cold and hungry and
-alone. And us sleeping warm in our beds after good suppers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor little thing,&rdquo; said Anne, picturing one of her own dear
-babies, cold and hungry and alone in such circumstances. &ldquo;If she has been
-ill-used, Miss Cornelia, she mustn&rsquo;t be taken back to such a place.
-<i>I</i> was an orphan once in a very similar situation.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have to consult the Hopetown asylum folks,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;Anyway, she can&rsquo;t be left at the manse. Dear knows what
-those poor children might learn from her. I understand that she has been known
-to swear. But just think of her being there two whole weeks and Mr Meredith
-never waking up to it! What business has a man like that to have a family? Why,
-Anne dearie, he ought to be a monk.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Two evenings later Miss Cornelia was back at Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the most amazing thing!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Mrs. Wiley
-was found dead in her bed the very morning after this Mary-creature ran away.
-She has had a bad heart for years and the doctor had warned her it might happen
-at any time. She had sent away her hired man and there was nobody in the house.
-Some neighbours found her the next day. They missed the child, it seems, but
-supposed Mrs. Wiley had sent her to her cousin near Charlottetown as she had
-said she was going to do. The cousin didn&rsquo;t come to the funeral and so
-nobody ever knew that Mary wasn&rsquo;t with her. The people Marshall talked to
-told him some things about the way Mrs. Wiley used this Mary that made his
-blood boil, so he declares. You know, it puts Marshall in a regular fury to
-hear of a child being ill-used. They said she whipped her mercilessly for every
-little fault or mistake. Some folks talked of writing to the asylum authorities
-but everybody&rsquo;s business is nobody&rsquo;s business and it was never
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sorry that Wiley person is dead,&rdquo; said Susan fiercely.
-&ldquo;I should like to go over-harbour and give her a piece of my mind.
-Starving and beating a child, Mrs. Dr. dear! As you know, I hold with lawful
-spanking, but I go no further. And what is to become of this poor child now,
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose she must be sent back to Hopetown,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;I think every one hereabouts who wants a home child has one. I&rsquo;ll
-see Mr. Meredith to-morrow and tell him my opinion of the whole affair.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And no doubt she will, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan, after Miss
-Cornelia had gone. &ldquo;She would stick at nothing, not even at shingling the
-church spire if she took it into her head. But I cannot understand how even
-Cornelia Bryant can talk to a minister as she does. You would think he was just
-any common person.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Miss Cornelia had gone, Nan Blythe uncurled herself from the hammock where
-she had been studying her lessons and slipped away to Rainbow Valley. The
-others were already there. Jem and Jerry were playing quoits with old
-horseshoes borrowed from the Glen blacksmith. Carl was stalking ants on a sunny
-hillock. Walter, lying on his stomach among the fern, was reading aloud to Mary
-and Di and Faith and Una from a wonderful book of myths wherein were
-fascinating accounts of Prester John and the Wandering Jew, divining rods and
-tailed men, of Schamir, the worm that split rocks and opened the way to golden
-treasure, of Fortunate Isles and swan-maidens. It was a great shock to Walter
-to learn that William Tell and Gelert were myths also; and the story of Bishop
-Hatto was to keep him awake all that night; but best of all he loved the
-stories of the Pied Piper and the San Greal. He read them thrillingly, while
-the bells on the Tree Lovers tinkled in the summer wind and the coolness of the
-evening shadows crept across the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, ain&rsquo;t them in&rsquo;resting lies?&rdquo; said Mary admiringly
-when Walter had closed the book.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They aren&rsquo;t lies,&rdquo; said Di indignantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t mean they&rsquo;re true?&rdquo; asked Mary
-incredulously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;not exactly. They&rsquo;re like those ghost-stories of yours.
-They weren&rsquo;t true&mdash;but you didn&rsquo;t expect us to believe them,
-so they weren&rsquo;t lies.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That yarn about the divining rod is no lie, anyhow,&rdquo; said Mary.
-&ldquo;Old Jake Crawford over-harbour can work it. They send for him from
-everywhere when they want to dig a well. And I believe I know the Wandering
-Jew.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said Una, awe-struck.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do&mdash;true&rsquo;s you&rsquo;re alive. There was an old man at Mrs.
-Wiley&rsquo;s one day last fall. He looked old enough to be <i>anything</i>. She was
-asking him about cedar posts, if he thought they&rsquo;d last well. And he
-said, &lsquo;Last well? They&rsquo;ll last a thousand years. I know, for
-I&rsquo;ve tried them twice.&rsquo; Now, if he was two thousand years old who
-was he but your Wandering Jew?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe the Wandering Jew would associate with a person
-like Mrs. Wiley,&rdquo; said Faith decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love the Pied Piper story,&rdquo; said Di, &ldquo;and so does mother.
-I always feel so sorry for the poor little lame boy who couldn&rsquo;t keep up
-with the others and got shut out of the mountain. He must have been so
-disappointed. I think all the rest of his life he&rsquo;d be wondering what
-wonderful thing he had missed and wishing he could have got in with the
-others.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But how glad his mother must have been,&rdquo; said Una softly. &ldquo;I
-think she had been sorry all her life that he was lame. Perhaps she even used
-to cry about it. But she would never be sorry again&mdash;never. She would be
-glad he was lame because that was why she hadn&rsquo;t lost him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Some day,&rdquo; said Walter dreamily, looking afar into the sky,
-&ldquo;the Pied Piper will come over the hill up there and down Rainbow Valley,
-piping merrily and sweetly. And I will follow him&mdash;follow him down to the
-shore&mdash;down to the sea&mdash;away from you all. I don&rsquo;t think
-I&rsquo;ll want to go&mdash;Jem will want to go&mdash;it will be such an
-adventure&mdash;but I won&rsquo;t. Only I&rsquo;ll <i>have</i> to&mdash;the music will
-call and call and call me until I <i>must</i> follow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll all go,&rdquo; cried Di, catching fire at the flame of
-Walter&rsquo;s fancy, and half-believing she could see the mocking, retreating
-figure of the mystic piper in the far, dim end of the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. You&rsquo;ll sit here and wait,&rdquo; said Walter, his great,
-splendid eyes full of strange glamour. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll wait for us to come
-back. And we may not come&mdash;for we cannot come as long as the Piper plays.
-He may pipe us round the world. And still you&rsquo;ll sit here and
-wait&mdash;and <i>wait</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, dry up,&rdquo; said Mary, shivering. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t look like
-that, Walter Blythe. You give me the creeps. Do you want to set me bawling? I
-could just see that horrid old Piper going away on, and you boys following him,
-and us girls sitting here waiting all alone. I dunno why it is&mdash;I never
-was one of the blubbering kind&mdash;but as soon as you start your spieling I
-always want to cry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter smiled in triumph. He liked to exercise this power of his over his
-companions&mdash;to play on their feelings, waken their fears, thrill their
-souls. It satisfied some dramatic instinct in him. But under his triumph was a
-queer little chill of some mysterious dread. The Pied Piper had seemed very
-real to him&mdash;as if the fluttering veil that hid the future had for a
-moment been blown aside in the starlit dusk of Rainbow Valley and some dim
-glimpse of coming years granted to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, coming up to their group with a report of the doings in ant-land, brought
-them all back to the realm of facts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ants <i>are</i> darned in&rsquo;resting,&rdquo; exclaimed Mary, glad to escape
-the shadowy Piper&rsquo;s thrall. &ldquo;Carl and me watched that bed in the
-graveyard all Saturday afternoon. I never thought there was so much in bugs.
-Say, but they&rsquo;re quarrelsome little cusses&mdash;some of &lsquo;em like
-to start a fight &lsquo;thout any reason, far&rsquo;s we could see. And some of
-&lsquo;em are cowards. They got so scared they just doubled theirselves up into
-a ball and let the other fellows bang &lsquo;em. They wouldn&rsquo;t put up a
-fight at all. Some of &lsquo;em are lazy and won&rsquo;t work. We watched
-&lsquo;em shirking. And there was one ant died of grief &lsquo;cause another
-ant got killed&mdash;wouldn&rsquo;t work&mdash;wouldn&rsquo;t eat&mdash;just
-died&mdash;it did, honest to Go&mdash;oodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A shocked silence prevailed. Every one knew that Mary had not started out to
-say &ldquo;goodness.&rdquo; Faith and Di exchanged glances that would have done
-credit to Miss Cornelia herself. Walter and Carl looked uncomfortable and
-Una&rsquo;s lip trembled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary squirmed uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That slipped out &lsquo;fore I thought&mdash;it did, honest to&mdash;I
-mean, true&rsquo;s you live, and I swallowed half of it. You folks over here
-are mighty squeamish seems to me. Wish you could have heard the Wileys when
-they had a fight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ladies don&rsquo;t say such things,&rdquo; said Faith, very primly for
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t right,&rdquo; whispered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I ain&rsquo;t a lady,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;What chance&rsquo;ve I
-ever had of being a lady? But I won&rsquo;t say that again if I can help it. I
-promise you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; said Una, &ldquo;you can&rsquo;t expect God to answer
-your prayers if you take His name in vain, Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t expect Him to answer &lsquo;em anyhow,&rdquo; said Mary of
-little faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been asking Him for a week to clear up this
-Wiley affair and He hasn&rsquo;t done a thing. I&rsquo;m going to give
-up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this juncture Nan arrived breathless.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, I&rsquo;ve news for you. Mrs. Elliott has been over-harbour
-and what do you think she found out? Mrs. Wiley is dead&mdash;she was found
-dead in bed the morning after you ran away. So you&rsquo;ll never have to go
-back to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dead!&rdquo; said Mary stupefied. Then she shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you s&rsquo;pose my praying had anything to do with that?&rdquo; she
-cried imploringly to Una. &ldquo;If it had I&rsquo;ll never pray again as long
-as I live. Why, she may come back and ha&rsquo;nt me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, Mary,&rdquo; said Una comfortingly, &ldquo;it hadn&rsquo;t. Why,
-Mrs. Wiley died long before you ever began to pray about it at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s so,&rdquo; said Mary recovering from her panic. &ldquo;But
-I tell you it gave me a start. I wouldn&rsquo;t like to think I&rsquo;d prayed
-anybody to death. I never thought of such a thing as her dying when I was
-praying. She didn&rsquo;t seem much like the dying kind. Did Mrs. Elliott say
-anything about me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She said you would likely have to go back to the asylum.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought as much,&rdquo; said Mary drearily. &ldquo;And then
-they&rsquo;ll give me out again&mdash;likely to some one just like Mrs. Wiley.
-Well, I s&rsquo;pose I can stand it. I&rsquo;m tough.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to pray that you won&rsquo;t have to go back,&rdquo;
-whispered Una, as she and Mary walked home to the manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can do as you like,&rdquo; said Mary decidedly, &ldquo;but I vow
-<i>I</i> won&rsquo;t. I&rsquo;m good and scared of this praying business. See
-what&rsquo;s come of it. If Mrs. Wiley <i>had</i> died after I started praying it
-would have been my doings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, it wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;I wish I could
-explain things better&mdash;father could, I know, if you&rsquo;d talk to him,
-Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Catch me! I don&rsquo;t know what to make of your father, that&rsquo;s
-the long and short of it. He goes by me and never sees me in broad daylight. I
-ain&rsquo;t proud&mdash;but I ain&rsquo;t a door-mat, neither!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, it&rsquo;s just father&rsquo;s way. Most of the time he never
-sees us, either. He is thinking deeply, that is all. And I <i>am</i> going to pray
-that God will keep you in Four Winds&mdash;because I like you, Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right. Only don&rsquo;t let me hear of any more people dying on
-account of it,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to stay in Four Winds
-fine. I like it and I like the harbour and the light house&mdash;and you and
-the Blythes. You&rsquo;re the only friends I ever had and I&rsquo;d hate to
-leave you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap09"></a>CHAPTER IX.<br />
-UNA INTERVENES</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia had an interview with Mr. Meredith which proved something of a
-shock to that abstracted gentleman. She pointed out to him, none too
-respectfully, his dereliction of duty in allowing a waif like Mary Vance to
-come into his family and associate with his children without knowing or
-learning anything about her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t say there is much harm done, of course,&rdquo; she
-concluded. &ldquo;This Mary-creature isn&rsquo;t what you might call bad, when
-all is said and done. I&rsquo;ve been questioning your children and the
-Blythes, and from what I can make out there&rsquo;s nothing much to be said
-against the child except that she&rsquo;s slangy and doesn&rsquo;t use very
-refined language. But think what might have happened if she&rsquo;d been like
-some of those home children we know of. You know yourself what that poor little
-creature the Jim Flaggs&rsquo; had, taught and told the Flagg children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith did know and was honestly shocked over his own carelessness in the
-matter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But what is to be done, Mrs. Elliott?&rdquo; he asked helplessly.
-&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t turn the poor child out. She must be cared for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course. We&rsquo;d better write to the Hopetown authorities at once.
-Meanwhile, I suppose she might as well stay here for a few more days till we
-hear from them. But keep your eyes and ears open, Mr. Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan would have died of horror on the spot if she had heard Miss Cornelia so
-admonishing a minister. But Miss Cornelia departed in a warm glow of
-satisfaction over duty done, and that night Mr. Meredith asked Mary to come
-into his study with him. Mary obeyed, looking literally ghastly with fright.
-But she got the surprise of her poor, battered little life. This man, of whom
-she had stood so terribly in awe, was the kindest, gentlest soul she had ever
-met. Before she knew what happened Mary found herself pouring all her troubles
-into his ear and receiving in return such sympathy and tender understanding as
-it had never occurred to her to imagine. Mary left the study with her face and
-eyes so softened that Una hardly knew her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your father&rsquo;s all right, when he does wake up,&rdquo; she said
-with a sniff that just escaped being a sob. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity he
-doesn&rsquo;t wake up oftener. He said I wasn&rsquo;t to blame for Mrs. Wiley
-dying, but that I must try to think of her good points and not of her bad ones.
-I dunno what good points she had, unless it was keeping her house clean and
-making first-class butter. I know I &lsquo;most wore my arms out scrubbing her
-old kitchen floor with the knots in it. But anything your father says goes with
-me after this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary proved a rather dull companion in the following days, however. She
-confided to Una that the more she thought of going back to the asylum the more
-she hated it. Una racked her small brains for some way of averting it, but it
-was Nan Blythe who came to the rescue with a somewhat startling suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott might take Mary herself. She has a great big house and Mr.
-Elliott is always wanting her to have help. It would be just a splendid place
-for Mary. Only she&rsquo;d have to behave herself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Nan, do you think Mrs. Elliott would take her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do any harm if you asked her,&rdquo; said Nan. At
-first Una did not think she could. She was so shy that to ask a favour of
-anybody was agony to her. And she was very much in awe of the bustling,
-energetic Mrs. Elliott. She liked her very much and always enjoyed a visit to
-her house; but to go and ask her to adopt Mary Vance seemed such a height of
-presumption that Una&rsquo;s timid spirit quailed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the Hopetown authorities wrote to Mr. Meredith to send Mary to them
-without delay Mary cried herself to sleep in the manse attic that night and Una
-found a desperate courage. The next evening she slipped away from the manse to
-the harbour road. Far down in Rainbow Valley she heard joyous laughter but her
-way lay not there. She was terribly pale and terribly in earnest&mdash;so much
-so that she took no notice of the people she met&mdash;and old Mrs. Stanley
-Flagg was quite huffed and said Una Meredith would be as absentminded as her
-father when she grew up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia lived half way between the Glen and Four Winds Point, in a house
-whose original glaring green hue had mellowed down to an agreeable greenish
-gray. Marshall Elliott had planted trees about it and set out a rose garden and
-a spruce hedge. It was quite a different place from what it had been in years
-agone. The manse children and the Ingleside children liked to go there. It was
-a beautiful walk down the old harbour road, and there was always a well-filled
-cooky jar at the end.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The misty sea was lapping softly far down on the sands. Three big boats were
-skimming down the harbour like great white sea-birds. A schooner was coming up
-the channel. The world of Four Winds was steeped in glowing colour, and subtle
-music, and strange glamour, and everybody should have been happy in it. But
-when Una turned in at Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s gate her very legs had almost
-refused to carry her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia was alone on the veranda. Una had hoped Mr. Elliott would be
-there. He was so big and hearty and twinkly that there would be encouragement
-in his presence. She sat on the little stool Miss Cornelia brought out and
-tried to eat the doughnut Miss Cornelia gave her. It stuck in her throat, but
-she swallowed desperately lest Miss Cornelia be offended. She could not talk;
-she was still pale; and her big, dark-blue eyes looked so piteous that Miss
-Cornelia concluded the child was in some trouble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s on your mind, dearie?&rdquo; she asked.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something, that&rsquo;s plain to be seen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una swallowed the last twist of doughnut with a desperate gulp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott, won&rsquo;t you take Mary Vance?&rdquo; she said
-beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia stared blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Me! Take Mary Vance! Do you mean keep her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;keep her&mdash;adopt her,&rdquo; said Una eagerly, gaining
-courage now that the ice was broken. &ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Elliott, <i>please</i> do. She
-doesn&rsquo;t want to go back to the asylum&mdash;she cries every night about
-it. She&rsquo;s so afraid of being sent to another hard place. And she&rsquo;s
-<i>so</i> smart&mdash;there isn&rsquo;t anything she can&rsquo;t do. I know you
-wouldn&rsquo;t be sorry if you took her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never thought of such a thing,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia rather
-helplessly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Won&rsquo;t</i> you think of it?&rdquo; implored Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, dearie, I don&rsquo;t want help. I&rsquo;m quite able to do all the
-work here. And I never thought I&rsquo;d like to have a home girl if I did need
-help.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The light went out of Una&rsquo;s eyes. Her lips trembled. She sat down on her
-stool again, a pathetic little figure of disappointment, and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t&mdash;dearie&mdash;don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; exclaimed Miss
-Cornelia in distress. She could never bear to hurt a child. &ldquo;I
-don&rsquo;t say I <i>won&rsquo;t</i> take her&mdash;but the idea is so new it has just
-kerflummuxed me. I must think it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary is <i>so</i> smart,&rdquo; said Una again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Humph! So I&rsquo;ve heard. I&rsquo;ve heard she swears, too. Is that
-true?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never heard her swear <i>exactly</i>,&rdquo; faltered Una
-uncomfortably. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;m afraid she <i>could</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you! Does she always tell the truth?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she does, except when she&rsquo;s afraid of a whipping.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And yet you want me to take her!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Some one</i> has to take her,&rdquo; sobbed Una. &ldquo;<i>Some one</i> has to look
-after her, Mrs. Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s true. Perhaps it <i>is</i> my duty to do it,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia with a sigh. &ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ll have to talk it over with Mr.
-Elliott. So don&rsquo;t say anything about it just yet. Take another doughnut,
-dearie.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una took it and ate it with a better appetite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m very fond of doughnuts,&rdquo; she confessed &ldquo;Aunt
-Martha never makes any. But Miss Susan at Ingleside does, and sometimes she
-lets us have a plateful in Rainbow Valley. Do you know what I do when I&rsquo;m
-hungry for doughnuts and can&rsquo;t get any, Mrs. Elliott?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, dearie. What?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I get out mother&rsquo;s old cook book and read the doughnut
-recipe&mdash;and the other recipes. They sound <i>so</i> nice. I always do that when
-I&rsquo;m hungry&mdash;especially after we&rsquo;ve had ditto for dinner. <i>Then</i>
-I read the fried chicken and the roast goose recipes. Mother could make all
-those nice things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Those manse children will starve to death yet if Mr. Meredith
-doesn&rsquo;t get married,&rdquo; Miss Cornelia told her husband indignantly
-after Una had gone. &ldquo;And he won&rsquo;t&mdash;and what&rsquo;s to be
-done? And <i>shall</i> we take this Mary-creature, Marshall?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, take her,&rdquo; said Marshall laconically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just like a man,&rdquo; said his wife, despairingly. &ldquo;&lsquo;Take
-her&rsquo;&mdash;as if that was all. There are a hundred things to be
-considered, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Take her&mdash;and we&rsquo;ll consider them afterwards,
-Cornelia,&rdquo; said her husband.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the end Miss Cornelia did take her and went up to announce her decision to
-the Ingleside people first.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Splendid!&rdquo; said Anne delightedly. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been hoping
-you would do that very thing, Miss Cornelia. I want that poor child to get a
-good home. I was a homeless little orphan just like her once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think this Mary-creature is or ever will be much like
-you,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia gloomily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s a cat of
-another colour. But she&rsquo;s also a human being with an immortal soul to
-save. I&rsquo;ve got a shorter catechism and a small tooth comb and I&rsquo;m
-going to do my duty by her, now that I&rsquo;ve set my hand to the plough,
-believe me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary received the news with chastened satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s better luck than I expected,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to mind your p&rsquo;s and q&rsquo;s with Mrs.
-Elliott,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I can do that,&rdquo; flashed Mary. &ldquo;I know how to behave
-when I want to just as well as you, Nan Blythe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mustn&rsquo;t use bad words, you know, Mary,&rdquo; said Una
-anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose she&rsquo;d die of horror if I did,&rdquo; grinned Mary,
-her white eyes shining with unholy glee over the idea. &ldquo;But you
-needn&rsquo;t worry, Una. Butter won&rsquo;t melt in my mouth after this.
-I&rsquo;ll be all prunes and prisms.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor tell lies,&rdquo; added Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not even to get off from a whipping?&rdquo; pleaded Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott will <i>never</i> whip you&mdash;<i>never</i>,&rdquo; exclaimed Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Won&rsquo;t she?&rdquo; said Mary skeptically. &ldquo;If I ever find
-myself in a place where I ain&rsquo;t licked I&rsquo;ll think it&rsquo;s heaven
-all right. No fear of me telling lies then. I ain&rsquo;t fond of telling
-&lsquo;em&mdash;I&rsquo;d ruther not, if it comes to that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The day before Mary&rsquo;s departure from the manse they had a picnic in her
-honour in Rainbow Valley, and that evening all the manse children gave her
-something from their scanty store of treasured things for a keepsake. Carl gave
-her his Noah&rsquo;s ark and Jerry his second best jew&rsquo;s-harp. Faith gave
-her a little hairbrush with a mirror in the back of it, which Mary had always
-considered very wonderful. Una hesitated between an old beaded purse and a gay
-picture of Daniel in the lion&rsquo;s den, and finally offered Mary her choice.
-Mary really hankered after the beaded purse, but she knew Una loved it, so she
-said,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give me Daniel. I&rsquo;d rusher have it &lsquo;cause I&rsquo;m partial
-to lions. Only I wish they&rsquo;d et Daniel up. It would have been more
-exciting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At bedtime Mary coaxed Una to sleep with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s for the last time,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and it&rsquo;s
-raining tonight, and I hate sleeping up there alone when it&rsquo;s raining on
-account of that graveyard. I don&rsquo;t mind it on fine nights, but a night
-like this I can&rsquo;t see anything but the rain pouring down on them old
-white stones, and the wind round the window sounds as if them dead people were
-trying to get in and crying &lsquo;cause they couldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like rainy nights,&rdquo; said Una, when they were cuddled down
-together in the little attic room, &ldquo;and so do the Blythe girls.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t mind &lsquo;em when I&rsquo;m not handy to
-graveyards,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;If I was alone here I&rsquo;d cry my eyes
-out I&rsquo;d be so lonesome. I feel awful bad to be leaving you all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott will let you come up and play in Rainbow Valley quite often
-I&rsquo;m sure,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;And you <i>will</i> be a good girl,
-won&rsquo;t you, Mary?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;ll try,&rdquo; sighed Mary. &ldquo;But it won&rsquo;t be as
-easy for me to be good&mdash;inside, I mean, as well as outside&mdash;as it is
-for you. You hadn&rsquo;t such scalawags of relations as I had.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But your people must have had some good qualities as well as bad
-ones,&rdquo; argued Una. &ldquo;You must live up to them and never mind their
-bad ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe they had any good qualities,&rdquo; said Mary
-gloomily. &ldquo;I never heard of any. My grandfather had money, but they say
-he was a rascal. No, I&rsquo;ll just have to start out on my own hook and do
-the best I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And God will help you, you know, Mary, if you ask Him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know about that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary. You know we asked God to get a home for you and He did.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see what He had to do with it,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;It was you put it into Mrs. Elliott&rsquo;s head.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But God put it into her <i>heart</i> to take you. All my putting it into her
-<i>head</i> wouldn&rsquo;t have done any good if He hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there may be something in that,&rdquo; admitted Mary. &ldquo;Mind
-you, I haven&rsquo;t got anything against God, Una. I&rsquo;m willing to give
-Him a chance. But, honest, I think He&rsquo;s an awful lot like your
-father&mdash;just absent-minded and never taking any notice of a body most of
-the time, but sometimes waking up all of a suddent and being awful good and
-kind and sensible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, no!&rdquo; exclaimed horrified Una. &ldquo;God isn&rsquo;t a
-bit like father&mdash;I mean He&rsquo;s a thousand times better and
-kinder.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If He&rsquo;s as good as your father He&rsquo;ll do for me,&rdquo; said
-Mary. &ldquo;When your father was talking to me I felt as if I never could be
-bad any more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish you&rsquo;d talk to father about Him,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-&ldquo;He can explain it all so much better than I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, so I will, next time he wakes up,&rdquo; promised Mary. &ldquo;That
-night he talked to me in the study he showed me real clear that my praying
-didn&rsquo;t kill Mrs. Wiley. My mind&rsquo;s been easy since, but I&rsquo;m
-real cautious about praying. I guess the old rhyme is the safest. Say, Una, it
-seems to me if one has to pray to anybody it&rsquo;d be better to pray to the
-devil than to God. God&rsquo;s good, anyhow so you say, so He won&rsquo;t do
-you any harm, but from all I can make out the devil needs to be pacified. I
-think the sensible way would be to say to <i>him</i>, &lsquo;Good devil, please
-don&rsquo;t tempt me. Just leave me alone, please.&rsquo; Now, don&rsquo;t
-you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, Mary. I&rsquo;m sure it couldn&rsquo;t be right to pray to
-the devil. And it wouldn&rsquo;t do any good because he&rsquo;s bad. It might
-aggravate him and he&rsquo;d be worse than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, as to this God-matter,&rdquo; said Mary stubbornly, &ldquo;since
-you and I can&rsquo;t settle it, there ain&rsquo;t no use in talking more about
-it until we&rsquo;ve a chanct to find out the rights of it. I&rsquo;ll do the
-best I can alone till then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If mother was alive she could tell us everything,&rdquo; said Una with a
-sigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wisht she was alive,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know
-what&rsquo;s going to become of you youngsters when I&rsquo;m gone. Anyhow, <i>do</i>
-try and keep the house a little tidy. The way people talks about it is
-scandalous. And the first thing you know your father will be getting married
-again and then your noses will be out of joint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una was startled. The idea of her father marrying again had never presented
-itself to her before. She did not like it and she lay silent under the chill of
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stepmothers are <i>awful</i> creatures,&rdquo; Mary went on. &ldquo;I could
-make your blood run cold if I was to tell you all I know about &lsquo;em. The
-Wilson kids across the road from Wiley&rsquo;s had a stepmother. She was just
-as bad to &lsquo;em as Mrs. Wiley was to me. It&rsquo;ll be awful if you get a
-stepmother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure we won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una tremulously.
-&ldquo;Father won&rsquo;t marry anybody else.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;ll be hounded into it, I expect,&rdquo; said Mary darkly.
-&ldquo;All the old maids in the settlement are after him. There&rsquo;s no
-being up to them. And the worst of stepmothers is, they always set your father
-against you. He&rsquo;d never care anything about you again. He&rsquo;d always
-take her part and her children&rsquo;s part. You see, she&rsquo;d make him
-believe you were all bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish you hadn&rsquo;t told me this, Mary,&rdquo; cried Una. &ldquo;It
-makes me feel so unhappy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only wanted to warn you,&rdquo; said Mary, rather repentantly.
-&ldquo;Of course, your father&rsquo;s so absent-minded he mightn&rsquo;t happen
-to think of getting married again. But it&rsquo;s better to be prepared.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Long after Mary slept serenely little Una lay awake, her eyes smarting with
-tears. On, how dreadful it would be if her father should marry somebody who
-would make him hate her and Jerry and Faith and Carl! She couldn&rsquo;t bear
-it&mdash;she couldn&rsquo;t!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had not instilled any poison of the kind Miss Cornelia had feared into the
-manse children&rsquo;s minds. Yet she had certainly contrived to do a little
-mischief with the best of intentions. But she slept dreamlessly, while Una lay
-awake and the rain fell and the wind wailed around the old gray manse. And the
-Rev. John Meredith forgot to go to bed at all because he was absorbed in
-reading a life of St. Augustine. It was gray dawn when he finished it and went
-upstairs, wrestling with the problems of two thousand years ago. The door of
-the girls&rsquo; room was open and he saw Faith lying asleep, rosy and
-beautiful. He wondered where Una was. Perhaps she had gone over to &ldquo;stay
-all night&rdquo; with the Blythe girls. She did this occasionally, deeming it a
-great treat. John Meredith sighed. He felt that Una&rsquo;s whereabouts ought
-not to be a mystery to him. Cecelia would have looked after her better than
-that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If only Cecelia were still with him! How pretty and gay she had been! How the
-old manse up at Maywater had echoed to her songs! And she had gone away so
-suddenly, taking her laughter and music and leaving silence&mdash;so suddenly
-that he had never quite got over his feeling of amazement. How could <i>she</i>, the
-beautiful and vivid, have died?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The idea of a second marriage had never presented itself seriously to John
-Meredith. He had loved his wife so deeply that he believed he could never care
-for any woman again. He had a vague idea that before very long Faith would be
-old enough to take her mother&rsquo;s place. Until then, he must do the best he
-could alone. He sighed and went to his room, where the bed was still unmade.
-Aunt Martha had forgotten it, and Mary had not dared to make it because Aunt
-Martha had forbidden her to meddle with anything in the minister&rsquo;s room.
-But Mr. Meredith did not notice that it was unmade. His last thoughts were of
-St. Augustine.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap10"></a>CHAPTER X.<br />
-THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ugh,&rdquo; said Faith, sitting up in bed with a shiver.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s raining. I do hate a rainy Sunday. Sunday is dull enough even
-when it&rsquo;s fine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We oughtn&rsquo;t to find Sunday dull,&rdquo; said Una sleepily, trying
-to pull her drowsy wits together with an uneasy conviction that they had
-overslept.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But we <i>do</i>, you know,&rdquo; said Faith candidly. &ldquo;Mary Vance says
-most Sundays are so dull she could hang herself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We ought to like Sunday better than Mary Vance,&rdquo; said Una
-remorsefully. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re the minister&rsquo;s children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we were a blacksmith&rsquo;s children,&rdquo; protested Faith
-angrily, hunting for her stockings. &ldquo;<i>Then</i> people wouldn&rsquo;t expect us
-to be better than other children. <i>Just</i> look at the holes in my heels. Mary
-darned them all up before she went away, but they&rsquo;re as bad as ever now.
-Una, get up. I can&rsquo;t get the breakfast alone. Oh, dear. I wish father and
-Jerry were home. You wouldn&rsquo;t think we&rsquo;d miss father much&mdash;we
-don&rsquo;t see much of him when he is home. And yet <i>everything</i> seems gone. I
-must run in and see how Aunt Martha is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is she any better?&rdquo; asked Una, when Faith returned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, she isn&rsquo;t. She&rsquo;s groaning with the misery still. Maybe
-we ought to tell Dr. Blythe. But she says not&mdash;she never had a doctor in
-her life and she isn&rsquo;t going to begin now. She says doctors just live by
-poisoning people. Do you suppose they do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not,&rdquo; said Una indignantly. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure
-Dr. Blythe wouldn&rsquo;t poison anybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, we&rsquo;ll have to rub Aunt Martha&rsquo;s back again after
-breakfast. We&rsquo;d better not make the flannels as hot as we did
-yesterday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith giggled over the remembrance. They had nearly scalded the skin off poor
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s back. Una sighed. Mary Vance would have known just what the
-precise temperature of flannels for a misery back should be. Mary knew
-everything. They knew nothing. And how could they learn, save by bitter
-experience for which, in this instance, unfortunate Aunt Martha had paid?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The preceding Monday Mr. Meredith had left for Nova Scotia to spend his short
-vacation, taking Jerry with him. On Wednesday Aunt Martha was suddenly seized
-with a recurring and mysterious ailment which she always called &ldquo;the
-misery,&rdquo; and which was tolerably certain to attack her at the most
-inconvenient times. She could not rise from her bed, any movement causing
-agony. A doctor she flatly refused to have. Faith and Una cooked the meals and
-waited on her. The less said about the meals the better&mdash;yet they were not
-much worse than Aunt Martha&rsquo;s had been. There were many women in the
-village who would have been glad to come and help, but Aunt Martha refused to
-let her plight be known.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must worry on till I kin git around,&rdquo; she groaned.
-&ldquo;Thank goodness, John isn&rsquo;t here. There&rsquo;s a plenty o&rsquo;
-cold biled meat and bread and you kin try your hand at making porridge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls had tried their hand, but so far without much success. The first day
-it had been too thin. The next day so thick that you could cut it in slices.
-And both days it had been burned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate porridge,&rdquo; said Faith viciously. &ldquo;When I have a house
-of my own I&rsquo;m <i>never</i> going to have a single bit of porridge in it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;ll your children do then?&rdquo; asked Una. &ldquo;Children
-have to have porridge or they won&rsquo;t grow. Everybody says so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They&rsquo;ll have to get along without it or stay runts,&rdquo;
-retorted Faith stubbornly. &ldquo;Here, Una, you stir it while I set the table.
-If I leave it for a minute the horrid stuff will burn. It&rsquo;s half past
-nine. We&rsquo;ll be late for Sunday School.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t seen anyone going past yet,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;There won&rsquo;t likely be many out. Just see how it&rsquo;s pouring.
-And when there&rsquo;s no preaching the folks won&rsquo;t come from a distance
-to bring the children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go and call Carl,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, it appeared, had a sore throat, induced by getting wet in the Rainbow
-Valley marsh the previous evening while pursuing dragon-flies. He had come home
-with dripping stockings and boots and had sat out the evening in them. He could
-not eat any breakfast and Faith made him go back to bed again. She and Una left
-the table as it was and went to Sunday School. There was no one in the school
-room when they got there and no one came. They waited until eleven and then
-went home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There doesn&rsquo;t seem to be anybody at the Methodist Sunday School
-either,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>glad</i>,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d hate to think the
-Methodists were better at going to Sunday School on rainy Sundays than the
-Presbyterians. But there&rsquo;s no preaching in their Church to-day, either,
-so likely their Sunday School is in the afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una washed the dishes, doing them quite nicely, for so much had she learned
-from Mary Vance. Faith swept the floor after a fashion and peeled the potatoes
-for dinner, cutting her finger in the process.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we had something for dinner besides ditto,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so tired of it. The Blythe children don&rsquo;t know what
-ditto is. And we <i>never</i> have any pudding. Nan says Susan would faint if they had
-no pudding on Sundays. Why aren&rsquo;t we like other people, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to be like other people,&rdquo; laughed Faith, tying
-up her bleeding finger. &ldquo;I like being myself. It&rsquo;s more
-interesting. Jessie Drew is as good a housekeeper as her mother, but would you
-want to be as stupid as she is?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But our house isn&rsquo;t right. Mary Vance says so. She says people
-talk about it being so untidy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith had an inspiration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll clean it all up,&rdquo; she cried. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll go
-right to work to-morrow. It&rsquo;s a real good chance when Aunt Martha is laid
-up and can&rsquo;t interfere with us. We&rsquo;ll have it all lovely and clean
-when father comes home, just like it was when Mary went away. <i>any one</i> can sweep
-and dust and wash windows. People won&rsquo;t be able to talk about us any
-more. Jem Blythe says it&rsquo;s only old cats that talk, but their talk hurts
-just as much as anybody&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope it will be fine to-morrow,&rdquo; said Una, fired with
-enthusiasm. &ldquo;Oh, Faith, it will be splendid to be all cleaned up and like
-other people.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope Aunt Martha&rsquo;s misery will last over to-morrow,&rdquo; said
-Faith. &ldquo;If it doesn&rsquo;t we won&rsquo;t get a single thing
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s amiable wish was fulfilled. The next day found Aunt Martha still
-unable to rise. Carl, too, was still sick and easily prevailed on to stay in
-bed. Neither Faith nor Una had any idea how sick the boy really was; a watchful
-mother would have had a doctor without delay; but there was no mother, and poor
-little Carl, with his sore throat and aching head and crimson cheeks, rolled
-himself up in his twisted bedclothes and suffered alone, somewhat comforted by
-the companionship of a small green lizard in the pocket of his ragged nighty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The world was full of summer sunshine after the rain. It was a peerless day for
-house-cleaning and Faith and Una went gaily to work.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll clean the dining-room and the parlour,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do to meddle with the study, and it doesn&rsquo;t
-matter much about the upstairs. The first thing is to take everything
-out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Accordingly, everything was taken out. The furniture was piled on the veranda
-and lawn and the Methodist graveyard fence was gaily draped with rugs. An orgy
-of sweeping followed, with an attempt at dusting on Una&rsquo;s part, while
-Faith washed the windows of the dining-room, breaking one pane and cracking two
-in the process. Una surveyed the streaked result dubiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t look right, somehow,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Mrs.
-Elliott&rsquo;s and Susan&rsquo;s windows just shine and sparkle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind. They let the sunshine through just as well,&rdquo; said
-Faith cheerfully. &ldquo;They <i>must</i> be clean after all the soap and water
-I&rsquo;ve used, and that&rsquo;s the main thing. Now, it&rsquo;s past eleven,
-so I&rsquo;ll wipe up this mess on the floor and we&rsquo;ll go outside. You
-dust the furniture and I&rsquo;ll shake the rugs. I&rsquo;m going to do it in
-the graveyard. I don&rsquo;t want to send dust flying all over the lawn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith enjoyed the rug shaking. To stand on Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone,
-flapping and shaking rugs, was real fun. To be sure, Elder Abraham Clow and his
-wife, driving past in their capacious double-seated buggy, seemed to gaze at
-her in grim disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t that a terrible sight?&rdquo; said Elder Abraham solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I would never have believed it if I hadn&rsquo;t seen it with my own
-eyes,&rdquo; said Mrs. Elder Abraham, more solemnly still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith waved a door mat cheerily at the Clow party. It did not worry her that
-the elder and his wife did not return her greeting. Everybody knew that Elder
-Abraham had never been known to smile since he had been appointed
-Superintendent of the Sunday School fourteen years previously. But it hurt her
-that Minnie and Adella Clow did not wave back. Faith liked Minnie and Adella.
-Next to the Blythes, they were her best friends in school and she always helped
-Adella with her sums. This was gratitude for you. Her friends cut her because
-she was shaking rugs in an old graveyard where, as Mary Vance said, not a
-living soul had been buried for years. Faith flounced around to the veranda,
-where she found Una grieved in spirit because the Clow girls had not waved to
-her, either.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose they&rsquo;re mad over something,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Perhaps they&rsquo;re jealous because we play so much in Rainbow Valley
-with the Blythes. Well, just wait till school opens and Adella wants me to show
-her how to do her sums! We&rsquo;ll get square then. Come on, let&rsquo;s put
-the things back in. I&rsquo;m tired to death and I don&rsquo;t believe the
-rooms will look much better than before we started&mdash;though I shook out
-pecks of dust in the graveyard. I <i>hate</i> house-cleaning.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was two o&rsquo;clock before the tired girls finished the two rooms. They
-got a dreary bite in the kitchen and intended to wash the dishes at once. But
-Faith happened to pick up a new story-book Di Blythe had lent her and was lost
-to the world until sunset. Una took a cup of rank tea up to Carl but found him
-asleep; so she curled herself up on Jerry&rsquo;s bed and went to sleep too.
-Meanwhile, a weird story flew through Glen St. Mary and folks asked each other
-seriously what was to be done with those manse youngsters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is past laughing at, believe <i>me</i>,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia to her
-husband, with a heavy sigh. &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t believe it at first.
-Miranda Drew brought the story home from the Methodist Sunday School this
-afternoon and I simply scoffed at it. But Mrs. Elder Abraham says she and the
-Elder saw it with their own eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Saw what?&rdquo; asked Marshall.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith and Una Meredith stayed home from Sunday School this morning and
-<i>cleaned house</i>,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, in accents of despair. &ldquo;When
-Elder Abraham went home from the church&mdash;he had stayed behind to
-straighten out the library books&mdash;he saw them shaking rugs in the
-Methodist graveyard. I can never look a Methodist in the face again. Just think
-what a scandal it will make!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A scandal it assuredly did make, growing more scandalous as it spread, until
-the over-harbour people heard that the manse children had not only cleaned
-house and put out a washing on Sunday, but had wound up with an afternoon
-picnic in the graveyard while the Methodist Sunday School was going on. The
-only household which remained in blissful ignorance of the terrible thing was
-the manse itself; on what Faith and Una fondly believed to be Tuesday it rained
-again; for the next three days it rained; nobody came near the manse; the manse
-folk went nowhere; they might have waded through the misty Rainbow Valley up to
-Ingleside, but all the Blythe family, save Susan and the doctor, were away on a
-visit to Avonlea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is the last of our bread,&rdquo; said Faith, &ldquo;and the ditto
-is done. If Aunt Martha doesn&rsquo;t get better soon <i>what</i> will we do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can buy some bread in the village and there&rsquo;s the codfish Mary
-dried,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;But we don&rsquo;t know how to cook it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s easy,&rdquo; laughed Faith. &ldquo;You just boil
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Boil it they did; but as it did not occur to them to soak it beforehand it was
-too salty to eat. That night they were very hungry; but by the following day
-their troubles were over. Sunshine returned to the world; Carl was well and
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s misery left her as suddenly as it had come; the butcher
-called at the manse and chased famine away. To crown all, the Blythes returned
-home, and that evening they and the manse children and Mary Vance kept sunset
-tryst once more in Rainbow Valley, where the daisies were floating upon the
-grass like spirits of the dew and the bells on the Tree Lovers rang like fairy
-chimes in the scented twilight.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap11"></a>CHAPTER XI.<br />
-A DREADFUL DISCOVERY</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you kids have gone and done it now,&rdquo; was Mary&rsquo;s
-greeting, as she joined them in the Valley. Miss Cornelia was up at Ingleside,
-holding agonized conclave with Anne and Susan, and Mary hoped that the session
-might be a long one, for it was all of two weeks since she had been allowed to
-revel with her chums in the dear valley of rainbows.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Done what?&rdquo; demanded everybody but Walter, who was day-dreaming as
-usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s you manse young ones, I mean,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;It was
-just awful of you. <i>I</i> wouldn&rsquo;t have done such a thing for the
-world, and <i>I</i> weren&rsquo;t brought up in a manse&mdash;weren&rsquo;t
-brought up <i>anywhere</i>&mdash;just <i>come</i> up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have <i>we</i> done?&rdquo; asked Faith blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Done! You&rsquo;d <i>better</i> ask! The talk is something terrible. I expect
-it&rsquo;s ruined your father in this congregation. He&rsquo;ll never be able
-to live it down, poor man! Everybody blames him for it, and that isn&rsquo;t
-fair. But nothing <i>is</i> fair in this world. You ought to be ashamed of
-yourselves.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>have</i> we done?&rdquo; asked Una again, despairingly. Faith said
-nothing, but her eyes flashed golden-brown scorn at Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t pretend innocence,&rdquo; said Mary, witheringly.
-&ldquo;Everybody knows what you have done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; interjected Jem Blythe indignantly.
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let me catch you making Una cry, Mary Vance. What are you
-talking about?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose you don&rsquo;t know, since you&rsquo;re just back from
-up west,&rdquo; said Mary, somewhat subdued. Jem could always manage her.
-&ldquo;But everybody else knows, you&rsquo;d better believe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Knows what?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That Faith and Una stayed home from Sunday School last Sunday and
-<i>cleaned house</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; cried Faith and Una, in passionate denial.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary looked haughtily at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t suppose you&rsquo;d deny it, after the way you&rsquo;ve
-combed <i>me</i> down for lying,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the good of
-saying you didn&rsquo;t? Everybody knows you <i>did</i>. Elder Clow and his wife saw
-you. Some people say it will break up the church, but <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t go
-that far. You <i>are</i> nice ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan Blythe stood up and put her arms around the dazed Faith and Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They were nice enough to take you in and feed you and clothe you when
-you were starving in Mr. Taylor&rsquo;s barn, Mary Vance,&rdquo; she said.
-&ldquo;You are <i>very</i> grateful, I must say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>am</i> grateful,&rdquo; retorted Mary. &ldquo;You&rsquo;d know it if
-you&rsquo;d heard me standing up for Mr. Meredith through thick and thin.
-I&rsquo;ve blistered my tongue talking for him this week. I&rsquo;ve said again
-and again that he isn&rsquo;t to blame if his young ones did clean house on
-Sunday. He was away&mdash;and they knew better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But we didn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; protested Una. &ldquo;It was <i>Monday</i> we
-cleaned house. Wasn&rsquo;t it, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course it was,&rdquo; said Faith, with flashing eyes. &ldquo;We went
-to Sunday School in spite of the rain&mdash;and no one came&mdash;not even
-Elder Abraham, for all his talk about fair-weather Christians.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was Saturday it rained,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Sunday was as fine
-as silk. I wasn&rsquo;t at Sunday School because I had toothache, but every one
-else was and they saw all your stuff out on the lawn. And Elder Abraham and
-Mrs. Elder Abraham saw you shaking rugs in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una sat down among the daisies and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here,&rdquo; said Jem resolutely, &ldquo;this thing must be cleared
-up. <i>Somebody</i> has made a mistake. Sunday <i>was</i> fine, Faith. How could you have
-thought Saturday was Sunday?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Prayer-meeting was Thursday night,&rdquo; cried Faith, &ldquo;and Adam
-flew into the soup-pot on Friday when Aunt Martha&rsquo;s cat chased him, and
-spoiled our dinner; and Saturday there was a snake in the cellar and Carl
-caught it with a forked stick and carried it out, and Sunday it rained. So
-there!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Prayer-meeting was Wednesday night,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Elder
-Baxter was to lead and he couldn&rsquo;t go Thursday night and it was changed
-to Wednesday. You were just a day out, Faith Meredith, and you <i>did</i> work on
-Sunday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly Faith burst into a peal of laughter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we did. What a joke!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t much of a joke for your father,&rdquo; said Mary sourly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;ll be all right when people find out it was just a
-mistake,&rdquo; said Faith carelessly. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll explain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can explain till you&rsquo;re black in the face,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;but a lie like that&rsquo;ll travel faster&rsquo;n further than you ever
-will. I&rsquo;VE seen more of the world than you and <i>I</i> know. Besides,
-there are plenty of folks won&rsquo;t believe it was a mistake.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They will if I tell them,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t tell everybody,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;No, I tell you
-you&rsquo;ve disgraced your father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s evening was spoiled by this dire reflection, but Faith refused to
-be made uncomfortable. Besides, she had a plan that would put everything right.
-So she put the past with its mistake behind her and gave herself over to
-enjoyment of the present. Jem went away to fish and Walter came out of his
-reverie and proceeded to describe the woods of heaven. Mary pricked up her ears
-and listened respectfully. Despite her awe of Walter she revelled in his
-&ldquo;book talk.&rdquo; It always gave her a delightful sensation. Walter had
-been reading his Coleridge that day, and he pictured a heaven where
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;There were gardens bright with sinuous rills<br />
-Where blossomed many an incense bearing tree,<br />
-And there were forests ancient as the hills<br />
-Enfolding sunny spots of greenery.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t know there was any woods in heaven,&rdquo; said Mary,
-with a long breath. &ldquo;I thought it was all streets&mdash;and
-streets&mdash;<i>and</i> streets.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course there are woods,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;Mother can&rsquo;t
-live without trees and I can&rsquo;t, so what would be the use of going to
-heaven if there weren&rsquo;t any trees?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are cities, too,&rdquo; said the young dreamer, &ldquo;splendid
-cities&mdash;coloured just like the sunset, with sapphire towers and rainbow
-domes. They are built of gold and diamonds&mdash;whole streets of diamonds,
-flashing like the sun. In the squares there are crystal fountains kissed by the
-light, and everywhere the asphodel blooms&mdash;the flower of heaven.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fancy!&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I saw the main street in Charlottetown
-once and I thought it was real grand, but I s&rsquo;pose it&rsquo;s nothing to
-heaven. Well, it all sounds gorgeous the way you tell it, but won&rsquo;t it be
-kind of dull, too?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I guess we can have some fun when the angels&rsquo; backs are
-turned,&rdquo; said Faith comfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heaven is <i>all</i> fun,&rdquo; declared Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Bible doesn&rsquo;t say so,&rdquo; cried Mary, who had read so much
-of the Bible on Sunday afternoons under Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s eye that she now
-considered herself quite an authority on it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mother says the Bible language is figurative,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does that mean that it isn&rsquo;t true?&rdquo; asked Mary hopefully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;not exactly&mdash;but I think it means that heaven will be just
-like what you&rsquo;d like it to be.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like it to be just like Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;with all you kids to gas and play with. <i>That&rsquo;s</i> good enough for me.
-Anyhow, we can&rsquo;t go to heaven till we&rsquo;re dead and maybe not then,
-so what&rsquo;s the use of worrying? Here&rsquo;s Jem with a string of trout
-and it&rsquo;s my turn to fry them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We ought to know more about heaven than Walter does when we&rsquo;re the
-minister&rsquo;s family,&rdquo; said Una, as they walked home that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We <i>know</i> just as much, but Walter can <i>imagine</i>,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott says he gets it from his mother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do wish we hadn&rsquo;t made that mistake about Sunday,&rdquo; sighed
-Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t worry over that. I&rsquo;ve thought of a great plan to
-explain so that everybody will know,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Just wait till
-to-morrow night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap12"></a>CHAPTER XII.<br />
-AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. Dr. Cooper preached in Glen St. Mary the next evening and the
-Presbyterian Church was crowded with people from near and far. The Reverend
-Doctor was reputed to be a very eloquent speaker; and, bearing in mind the old
-dictum that a minister should take his best clothes to the city and his best
-sermons to the country, he delivered a very scholarly and impressive discourse.
-But when the folks went home that night it was not of Dr. Cooper&rsquo;s sermon
-they talked. They had completely forgotten all about it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dr. Cooper had concluded with a fervent appeal, had wiped the perspiration from
-his massive brow, had said &ldquo;Let us pray&rdquo; as he was famed for saying
-it, and had duly prayed. There was a slight pause. In Glen St. Mary church the
-old fashion of taking the collection after the sermon instead of before still
-held&mdash;mainly because the Methodists had adopted the new fashion first, and
-Miss Cornelia and Elder Clow would not hear of following where Methodists had
-led. Charles Baxter and Thomas Douglas, whose duty it was to pass the plates,
-were on the point of rising to their feet. The organist had got out the music
-of her anthem and the choir had cleared its throat. Suddenly Faith Meredith
-rose in the manse pew, walked up to the pulpit platform, and faced the amazed
-audience.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia half rose in her seat and then sat down again. Her pew was far
-back and it occurred to her that whatever Faith meant to do or say would be
-half done or said before she could reach her. There was no use making the
-exhibition worse than it had to be. With an anguished glance at Mrs. Dr.
-Blythe, and another at Deacon Warren of the Methodist Church, Miss Cornelia
-resigned herself to another scandal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If the child was only dressed decently itself,&rdquo; she groaned in
-spirit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith, having spilled ink on her good dress, had serenely put on an old one of
-faded pink print. A caticornered rent in the skirt had been darned with scarlet
-tracing cotton and the hem had been let down, showing a bright strip of unfaded
-pink around the skirt. But Faith was not thinking of her clothes at all. She
-was feeling suddenly nervous. What had seemed easy in imagination was rather
-hard in reality. Confronted by all those staring questioning eyes Faith&rsquo;s
-courage almost failed her. The lights were so bright, the silence so awesome.
-She thought she could not speak after all. But she <i>must</i>&mdash;her father <i>must</i>
-be cleared of suspicion. Only&mdash;the words would <i>not</i> come.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s little pearl-pure face gleamed up at her beseechingly from the
-manse pew. The Blythe children were lost in amazement. Back under the gallery
-Faith saw the sweet graciousness of Miss Rosemary West&rsquo;s smile and the
-amusement of Miss Ellen&rsquo;s. But none of these helped her. It was Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew who saved the situation. Bertie Shakespeare sat in the front
-seat of the gallery and he made a derisive face at Faith. Faith promptly made a
-dreadful one back at him, and, in her anger over being grimaced at by Bertie
-Shakespeare, forgot her stage fright. She found her voice and spoke out clearly
-and bravely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to explain something,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I want to do it
-now because everybody will hear it that heard the other. People are saying that
-Una and I stayed home last Sunday and cleaned house instead of going to Sunday
-School. Well, we did&mdash;but we didn&rsquo;t mean to. We got mixed up in the
-days of the week. It was all Elder Baxter&rsquo;s fault&rdquo;&mdash;sensation
-in Baxter&rsquo;s pew&mdash;&ldquo;because he went and changed the
-prayer-meeting to Wednesday night and then we thought Thursday was Friday and
-so on till we thought Saturday was Sunday. Carl was laid up sick and so was
-Aunt Martha, so they couldn&rsquo;t put us right. We went to Sunday School in
-all that rain on Saturday and nobody came. And then we thought we&rsquo;d clean
-house on Monday and stop old cats from talking about how dirty the manse
-was&rdquo;&mdash;general sensation all over the church&mdash;&ldquo;and we did.
-I shook the rugs in the Methodist graveyard because it was such a convenient
-place and not because I meant to be disrespectful of the dead. It isn&rsquo;t
-the dead folks who have made the fuss over this&mdash;it&rsquo;s the living
-folks. And it isn&rsquo;t right for any of you to blame my father for this,
-because he was away and didn&rsquo;t know, and anyhow we thought it was Monday.
-He&rsquo;s just the best father that ever lived in the world and we love him
-with all our hearts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s bravado ebbed out in a sob. She ran down the steps and flashed
-out of the side door of the church. There the friendly starlit, summer night
-comforted her and the ache went out of her eyes and throat. She felt very
-happy. The dreadful explanation was over and everybody knew now that her father
-wasn&rsquo;t to blame and that she and Una were not so wicked as to have
-cleaned house knowingly on Sunday.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Inside the church people gazed blankly at each other, but Thomas Douglas rose
-and walked up the aisle with a set face. <i>His</i> duty was clear; the collection
-must be taken if the skies fell. Taken it was; the choir sang the anthem, with
-a dismal conviction that it fell terribly flat, and Dr. Cooper gave out the
-concluding hymn and pronounced the benediction with considerably less unction
-than usual. The Reverend Doctor had a sense of humour and Faith&rsquo;s
-performance tickled him. Besides, John Meredith was well known in Presbyterian
-circles.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith returned home the next afternoon, but before his coming Faith
-contrived to scandalize Glen St. Mary again. In the reaction from Sunday
-evening&rsquo;s intensity and strain she was especially full of what Miss
-Cornelia would have called &ldquo;devilment&rdquo; on Monday. This led her to
-dare Walter Blythe to ride through Main Street on a pig, while she rode another
-one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The pigs in question were two tall, lank animals, supposed to belong to Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew&rsquo;s father, which had been haunting the roadside by the
-manse for a couple of weeks. Walter did not want to ride a pig through Glen St.
-Mary, but whatever Faith Meredith dared him to do must be done. They tore down
-the hill and through the village, Faith bent double with laughter over her
-terrified courser, Walter crimson with shame. They tore past the minister
-himself, just coming home from the station; he, being a little less dreamy and
-abstracted than usual&mdash;owing to having had a talk on the train with Miss
-Cornelia who always wakened him up temporarily&mdash;noticed them, and thought
-he really must speak to Faith about it and tell her that such conduct was not
-seemly. But he had forgotten the trifling incident by the time he reached home.
-They passed Mrs. Alec Davis, who shrieked in horror, and they passed Miss
-Rosemary West who laughed and sighed. Finally, just before the pigs swooped
-into Bertie Shakespeare Drew&rsquo;s back yard, never to emerge therefrom
-again, so great had been the shock to their nerves&mdash;Faith and Walter
-jumped off, as Dr. and Mrs. Blythe drove swiftly by.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So that is how you bring up your boys,&rdquo; said Gilbert with mock
-severity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps I do spoil them a little,&rdquo; said Anne contritely,
-&ldquo;but, oh, Gilbert, when I think of my own childhood before I came to
-Green Gables I haven&rsquo;t the heart to be very strict. How hungry for love
-and fun I was&mdash;an unloved little drudge with never a chance to play! They
-do have such good times with the manse children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about the poor pigs?&rdquo; asked Gilbert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne tried to look sober and failed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think it hurt them?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t
-think anything could hurt those animals. They&rsquo;ve been the plague of the
-neighbourhood this summer and the Drews <i>won&rsquo;t</i> shut them up. But
-I&rsquo;ll talk to Walter&mdash;if I can keep from laughing when I do
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia came up to Ingleside that evening to relieve her feelings over
-Sunday night. To her surprise she found that Anne did not view Faith&rsquo;s
-performance in quite the same light as she did.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought there was something brave and pathetic in her getting up there
-before that churchful of people, to confess,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You could
-see she was frightened to death&mdash;yet she was bound to clear her father. I
-loved her for it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, of course, the poor child meant well,&rdquo; sighed Miss Cornelia,
-&ldquo;but just the same it was a terrible thing to do, and is making more talk
-than the house-cleaning on Sunday. <i>That</i> had begun to die away, and this has
-started it all up again. Rosemary West is like you&mdash;she said last night as
-she left the church that it was a plucky thing for Faith to do, but it made her
-feel sorry for the child, too. Miss Ellen thought it all a good joke, and said
-she hadn&rsquo;t had as much fun in church for years. Of course <i>they</i>
-don&rsquo;t care&mdash;they are Episcopalians. But we Presbyterians feel it.
-And there were so many hotel people there that night and scores of Methodists.
-Mrs. Leander Crawford cried, she felt so bad. And Mrs. Alec Davis said the
-little hussy ought to be spanked.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Leander Crawford is always crying in church,&rdquo; said Susan
-contemptuously. &ldquo;She cries over every affecting thing the minister says.
-But you do not often see her name on a subscription list, Mrs. Dr. dear. Tears
-come cheaper. She tried to talk to me one day about Aunt Martha being such a
-dirty housekeeper; and I wanted to say, &lsquo;Every one knows that <i>you</i> have
-been seen mixing up cakes in the kitchen wash-pan, Mrs. Leander
-Crawford!&rsquo; But I did not say it, Mrs. Dr. dear, because I have too much
-respect for myself to condescend to argue with the likes of her. But I could
-tell worse things than <i>that</i> of Mrs. Leander Crawford, if I was disposed to
-gossip. And as for Mrs. Alec Davis, if she had said that to me, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-do you know what I would have said? I would have said, &lsquo;I have no doubt
-you would like to spank Faith, Mrs. Davis, but you will never have the chance
-to spank a minister&rsquo;s daughter either in this world or in that which is
-to come.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If poor Faith had only been decently dressed,&rdquo; lamented Miss
-Cornelia again, &ldquo;it wouldn&rsquo;t have been quite that bad. But that
-dress looked dreadful, as she stood there upon the platform.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was clean, though, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;They <i>are</i>
-clean children. They may be very heedless and reckless, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am
-not saying they are not, but they <i>never</i> forget to wash behind their
-ears.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The idea of Faith forgetting what day was Sunday,&rdquo; persisted Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;She will grow up just as careless and impractical as her
-father, believe <i>me</i>. I suppose Carl would have known better if he hadn&rsquo;t
-been sick. I don&rsquo;t know what was wrong with him, but I think it very
-likely he had been eating those blueberries that grew in the graveyard. No
-wonder they made him sick. If I was a Methodist I&rsquo;d try to keep my
-graveyard cleaned up at least.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am of the opinion that Carl only ate the sours that grow on the
-dyke,&rdquo; said Susan hopefully. &ldquo;I do not think <i>any</i> minister&rsquo;s
-son would eat blueberries that grew on the graves of dead people. You know it
-would not be so bad, Mrs. Dr. dear, to eat things that grew on the dyke.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of last night&rsquo;s performance was the face Faith made made
-at somebody in the congregation before she started in,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;Elder Clow declares she made it at him. And <i>did</i> you hear that
-she was seen riding on a pig to-day?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I saw her. Walter was with her. I gave him a little&mdash;a <i>very</i>
-little&mdash;scolding about it. He did not say much, but he gave me the
-impression that it had been his idea and that Faith was not to blame.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not not believe <i>that</i>, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; cried Susan, up in
-arms. &ldquo;That is just Walter&rsquo;s way&mdash;to take the blame on
-himself. But you know as well as I do, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that blessed child
-would never have thought of riding on a pig, even if he does write
-poetry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, there&rsquo;s no doubt the notion was hatched in Faith
-Meredith&rsquo;s brain,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;And I don&rsquo;t say
-that I&rsquo;m sorry that Amos Drew&rsquo;s old pigs did get their come-uppance
-for once. But the minister&rsquo;s daughter!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>And</i> the doctor&rsquo;s son!&rdquo; said Anne, mimicking Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s tone. Then she laughed. &ldquo;Dear Miss Cornelia,
-they&rsquo;re only little children. And you <i>know</i> they&rsquo;ve never yet done
-anything bad&mdash;they&rsquo;re just heedless and impulsive&mdash;as I was
-myself once. They&rsquo;ll grow sedate and sober&mdash;as I&rsquo;ve
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia laughed, too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are times, Anne dearie, when I know by your eyes that <i>your</i>
-soberness is put on like a garment and you&rsquo;re really aching to do
-something wild and young again. Well, I feel encouraged. Somehow, a talk with
-you always does have that effect on me. Now, when I go to see Barbara Samson,
-it&rsquo;s just the opposite. She makes me feel that everything&rsquo;s wrong
-and always will be. But of course living all your life with a man like Joe
-Samson wouldn&rsquo;t be exactly cheering.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a very strange thing to think that she married Joe Samson after
-all her chances,&rdquo; remarked Susan. &ldquo;She was much sought after when
-she was a girl. She used to boast to me that she had twenty-one beaus and Mr.
-Pethick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was Mr. Pethick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he was a sort of hanger-on, Mrs. Dr. dear, but you could not
-exactly call him a beau. He did not really have any intentions. Twenty-one
-beaus&mdash;and me that never had one! But Barbara went through the woods and
-picked up the crooked stick after all. And yet they say her husband can make
-better baking powder biscuits than she can, and she always gets him to make
-them when company comes to tea.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Which reminds <i>me</i> that I have company coming to tea to-morrow and I must
-go home and set my bread,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Mary said she could
-set it and no doubt she could. But while I live and move and have my being
-<i>I</i> set my own bread, believe me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How is Mary getting on?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no fault to find with Mary,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia rather
-gloomily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s getting some flesh on her bones and she&rsquo;s
-clean and respectful&mdash;though there&rsquo;s more in her than <i>I</i> can
-fathom. She&rsquo;s a sly puss. If you dug for a thousand years you
-couldn&rsquo;t get to the bottom of that child&rsquo;s mind, believe <i>me!</i> As for
-work, I never saw anything like her. She <i>eats</i> it up. Mrs. Wiley may have been
-cruel to her, but folks needn&rsquo;t say she made Mary work. Mary&rsquo;s a
-born worker. Sometimes I wonder which will wear out first&mdash;her legs or her
-tongue. I don&rsquo;t have enough to do to keep me out of mischief these days.
-I&rsquo;ll be real glad when school opens, for then I&rsquo;ll have something
-to do again. Mary doesn&rsquo;t want to go to school, but I put my foot down
-and said that go she must. I shall <i>not</i> have the Methodists saying that I kept
-her out of school while I lolled in idleness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap13"></a>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
-THE HOUSE ON THE HILL</h2>
-
-<p>
-There was a little unfailing spring, always icy cold and crystal pure, in a
-certain birch-screened hollow of Rainbow Valley in the lower corner near the
-marsh. Not a great many people knew of its existence. The manse and Ingleside
-children knew, of course, as they knew everything else about the magic valley.
-Occasionally they went there to get a drink, and it figured in many of their
-plays as a fountain of old romance. Anne knew of it and loved it because it
-somehow reminded her of the beloved Dryad&rsquo;s Bubble at Green Gables.
-Rosemary West knew of it; it was her fountain of romance, too. Eighteen years
-ago she had sat behind it one spring twilight and heard young Martin Crawford
-stammer out a confession of fervent, boyish love. She had whispered her own
-secret in return, and they had kissed and promised by the wild wood spring.
-They had never stood together by it again&mdash;Martin had sailed on his fatal
-voyage soon after; but to Rosemary West it was always a sacred spot, hallowed
-by that immortal hour of youth and love. Whenever she passed near it she turned
-aside to hold a secret tryst with an old dream&mdash;a dream from which the
-pain had long gone, leaving only its unforgettable sweetness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The spring was a hidden thing. You might have passed within ten feet of it and
-never have suspected its existence. Two generations past a huge old pine had
-fallen almost across it. Nothing was left of the tree but its crumbling trunk
-out of which the ferns grew thickly, making a green roof and a lacy screen for
-the water. A maple-tree grew beside it with a curiously gnarled and twisted
-trunk, creeping along the ground for a little way before shooting up into the
-air, and so forming a quaint seat; and September had flung a scarf of pale
-smoke-blue asters around the hollow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith, taking the cross-lots road through Rainbow Valley on his way
-home from some pastoral visitations around the Harbour head one evening, turned
-aside to drink of the little spring. Walter Blythe had shown it to him one
-afternoon only a few days before, and they had had a long talk together on the
-maple seat. John Meredith, under all his shyness and aloofness, had the heart
-of a boy. He had been called Jack in his youth, though nobody in Glen St. Mary
-would ever have believed it. Walter and he had taken to each other and had
-talked unreservedly. Mr. Meredith found his way into some sealed and sacred
-chambers of the lad&rsquo;s soul wherein not even Di had ever looked. They were
-to be chums from that friendly hour and Walter knew that he would never be
-frightened of the minister again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never believed before that it was possible to get really acquainted
-with a minister,&rdquo; he told his mother that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith drank from his slender white hand, whose grip of steel always
-surprised people who were unacquainted with it, and then sat down on the maple
-seat. He was in no hurry to go home; this was a beautiful spot and he was
-mentally weary after a round of rather uninspiring conversations with many good
-and stupid people. The moon was rising. Rainbow Valley was wind-haunted and
-star-sentinelled only where he was, but afar from the upper end came the gay
-notes of children&rsquo;s laughter and voices.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ethereal beauty of the asters in the moonlight, the glimmer of the little
-spring, the soft croon of the brook, the wavering grace of the brackens all
-wove a white magic round John Meredith. He forgot congregational worries and
-spiritual problems; the years slipped away from him; he was a young divinity
-student again and the roses of June were blooming red and fragrant on the dark,
-queenly head of his Cecilia. He sat there and dreamed like any boy. And it was
-at this propitious moment that Rosemary West stepped aside from the by-path and
-stood beside him in that dangerous, spell-weaving place. John Meredith stood up
-as she came in and saw her&mdash;<i>really</i> saw her&mdash;for the first time.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He had met her in his church once or twice and shaken hands with her
-abstractedly as he did with anyone he happened to encounter on his way down the
-aisle. He had never met her elsewhere, for the Wests were Episcopalians, with
-church affinities in Lowbridge, and no occasion for calling upon them had ever
-arisen. Before to-night, if anyone had asked John Meredith what Rosemary West
-looked like he would not have had the slightest notion. But he was never to
-forget her, as she appeared to him in the glamour of kind moonlight by the
-spring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was certainly not in the least like Cecilia, who had always been his ideal
-of womanly beauty. Cecilia had been small and dark and vivacious&mdash;Rosemary
-West was tall and fair and placid, yet John Meredith thought he had never seen
-so beautiful a woman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was bareheaded and her golden hair&mdash;hair of a warm gold,
-&ldquo;molasses taffy&rdquo; colour as Di Blythe had said&mdash;was pinned in
-sleek, close coils over her head; she had large, tranquil, blue eyes that
-always seemed full of friendliness, a high white forehead and a finely shaped
-face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West was always called a &ldquo;sweet woman.&rdquo; She was so sweet
-that even her high-bred, stately air had never gained for her the reputation of
-being &ldquo;stuck-up,&rdquo; which it would inevitably have done in the case
-of anyone else in Glen St. Mary. Life had taught her to be brave, to be
-patient, to love, to forgive. She had watched the ship on which her lover went
-sailing out of Four Winds Harbour into the sunset. But, though she watched
-long, she had never seen it coming sailing back. That vigil had taken girlhood
-from her eyes, yet she kept her youth to a marvellous degree. Perhaps this was
-because she always seemed to preserve that attitude of delighted surprise
-towards life which most of us leave behind in childhood&mdash;an attitude which
-not only made Rosemary herself seem young, but flung a pleasing illusion of
-youth over the consciousness of every one who talked to her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith was startled by her loveliness and Rosemary was startled by his
-presence. She had never thought she would find anyone by that remote spring,
-least of all the recluse of Glen St. Mary manse. She almost dropped the heavy
-armful of books she was carrying home from the Glen lending library, and then,
-to cover her confusion, she told one of those small fibs which even the best of
-women do tell at times.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I came for a drink,&rdquo; she said, stammering a little, in
-answer to Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s grave &ldquo;good evening, Miss West.&rdquo; She
-felt that she was an unpardonable goose and she longed to shake herself. But
-John Meredith was not a vain man and he knew she would likely have been as much
-startled had she met old Elder Clow in that unexpected fashion. Her confusion
-put him at ease and he forgot to be shy; besides, even the shyest of men can
-sometimes be quite audacious in moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me get you a cup,&rdquo; he said smiling. There was a cup near by,
-if he had only known it, a cracked, handleless blue cup secreted under the
-maple by the Rainbow Valley children; but he did not know it, so he stepped out
-to one of the birch-trees and stripped a bit of its white skin away. Deftly he
-fashioned this into a three-cornered cup, filled it from the spring, and handed
-it to Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary took it and drank every drop to punish herself for her fib, for she
-was not in the least thirsty, and to drink a fairly large cupful of water when
-you are not thirsty is somewhat of an ordeal. Yet the memory of that draught
-was to be very pleasant to Rosemary. In after years it seemed to her that there
-was something sacramental about it. Perhaps this was because of what the
-minister did when she handed him back the cup. He stooped again and filled it
-and drank of it himself. It was only by accident that he put his lips just
-where Rosemary had put hers, and Rosemary knew it. Nevertheless, it had a
-curious significance for her. They two had drunk of the same cup. She
-remembered idly that an old aunt of hers used to say that when two people did
-this their after-lives would be linked in some fashion, whether for good or
-ill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith held the cup uncertainly. He did not know what to do with it. The
-logical thing would have been to toss it away, but somehow he was disinclined
-to do this. Rosemary held out her hand for it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you let me have it?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You made it so
-knackily. I never saw anyone make a birch cup so since my little brother used
-to make them long ago&mdash;before he died.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I learned how to make them when <i>I</i> was a boy, camping out one
-summer. An old hunter taught me,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;Let me carry
-your books, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was startled into another fib and said oh, they were not heavy. But
-the minister took them from her with quite a masterful air and they walked away
-together. It was the first time Rosemary had stood by the valley spring without
-thinking of Martin Crawford. The mystic tryst had been broken.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The little by-path wound around the marsh and then struck up the long wooded
-hill on the top of which Rosemary lived. Beyond, through the trees, they could
-see the moonlight shining across the level summer fields. But the little path
-was shadowy and narrow. Trees crowded over it, and trees are never quite as
-friendly to human beings after nightfall as they are in daylight. They wrap
-themselves away from us. They whisper and plot furtively. If they reach out a
-hand to us it has a hostile, tentative touch. People walking amid trees after
-night always draw closer together instinctively and involuntarily, making an
-alliance, physical and mental, against certain alien powers around them.
-Rosemary&rsquo;s dress brushed against John Meredith as they walked. Not even
-an absent-minded minister, who was after all a young man still, though he
-firmly believed he had outlived romance, could be insensible to the charm of
-the night and the path and the companion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It is never quite safe to think we have done with life. When we imagine we have
-finished our story fate has a trick of turning the page and showing us yet
-another chapter. These two people each thought their hearts belonged
-irrevocably to the past; but they both found their walk up that hill very
-pleasant. Rosemary thought the Glen minister was by no means as shy and
-tongue-tied as he had been represented. He seemed to find no difficulty in
-talking easily and freely. Glen housewives would have been amazed had they
-heard him. But then so many Glen housewives talked only gossip and the price of
-eggs, and John Meredith was not interested in either. He talked to Rosemary of
-books and music and wide-world doings and something of his own history, and
-found that she could understand and respond. Rosemary, it appeared, possessed a
-book which Mr. Meredith had not read and wished to read. She offered to lend it
-to him and when they reached the old homestead on the hill he went in to get
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The house itself was an old-fashioned gray one, hung with vines, through which
-the light in the sitting-room winked in friendly fashion. It looked down the
-Glen, over the harbour, silvered in the moonlight, to the sand-dunes and the
-moaning ocean. They walked in through a garden that always seemed to smell of
-roses, even when no roses were in bloom. There was a sisterhood of lilies at
-the gate and a ribbon of asters on either side of the broad walk, and a lacery
-of fir trees on the hill&rsquo;s edge beyond the house.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have the whole world at your doorstep here,&rdquo; said John
-Meredith, with a long breath. &ldquo;What a view&mdash;what an outlook! At
-times I feel stifled down there in the Glen. You can breathe up here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is calm to-night,&rdquo; said Rosemary laughing. &ldquo;If there were
-a wind it would blow your breath away. We get &lsquo;a&rsquo; the airts the
-wind can blow&rsquo; up here. This place should be called Four Winds instead of
-the Harbour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like wind,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;A day when there is no wind seems to
-me <i>dead</i>. A windy day wakes me up.&rdquo; He gave a conscious laugh. &ldquo;On a
-calm day I fall into day dreams. No doubt you know my reputation, Miss West. If
-I cut you dead the next time we meet don&rsquo;t put it down to bad manners.
-Please understand that it is only abstraction and forgive me&mdash;and speak to
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They found Ellen West in the sitting room when they went in. She laid her
-glasses down on the book she had been reading and looked at them in amazement
-tinctured with something else. But she shook hands amiably with Mr. Meredith
-and he sat down and talked to her, while Rosemary hunted out his book.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen West was ten years older than Rosemary, and so different from her that it
-was hard to believe they were sisters. She was dark and massive, with black
-hair, thick, black eyebrows and eyes of the clear, slaty blue of the gulf water
-in a north wind. She had a rather stern, forbidding look, but she was in
-reality very jolly, with a hearty, gurgling laugh and a deep, mellow, pleasant
-voice with a suggestion of masculinity about it. She had once remarked to
-Rosemary that she would really like to have a talk with that Presbyterian
-minister at the Glen, to see if he could find a word to say to a woman when he
-was cornered. She had her chance now and she tackled him on world politics.
-Miss Ellen, who was a great reader, had been devouring a book on the Kaiser of
-Germany, and she demanded Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s opinion of him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A dangerous man,&rdquo; was his answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you!&rdquo; Miss Ellen nodded. &ldquo;Mark my words, Mr.
-Meredith, that man is going to fight somebody yet. He&rsquo;s <i>aching</i> to. He is
-going to set the world on fire.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you mean that he will wantonly precipitate a great war I hardly think
-so,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;The day has gone by for that sort of
-thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Bless you, it hasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; rumbled Ellen. &ldquo;The day never
-goes by for men and nations to make asses of themselves and take to the fists.
-The millenniun isn&rsquo;t <i>that</i> near, Mr. Meredith, and <i>you</i> don&rsquo;t think
-it is any more than I do. As for this Kaiser, mark my words, he is going to
-make a heap of trouble&rdquo;&mdash;and Miss Ellen prodded her book
-emphatically with her long finger. &ldquo;Yes, if he isn&rsquo;t nipped in the
-bud he&rsquo;s going to make trouble. <i>We&rsquo;ll</i> live to see it&mdash;you and
-I will live to see it, Mr. Meredith. And who is going to nip him? England
-should, but she won&rsquo;t. <i>Who</i> is going to nip him? Tell me that, Mr.
-Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith couldn&rsquo;t tell her, but they plunged into a discussion of
-German militarism that lasted long after Rosemary had found the book. Rosemary
-said nothing, but sat in a little rocker behind Ellen and stroked an important
-black cat meditatively. John Meredith hunted big game in Europe with Ellen, but
-he looked oftener at Rosemary than at Ellen, and Ellen noticed it. After
-Rosemary had gone to the door with him and come back Ellen rose and looked at
-her accusingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary West, that man has a notion of courting you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen&rsquo;s speech was like a blow to her. It rubbed all
-the bloom off the pleasant evening. But she would not let Ellen see how it hurt
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; she said, and laughed, a little too carelessly.
-&ldquo;You see a beau for me in every bush, Ellen. Why he told me all about his
-wife to-night&mdash;how much she was to him&mdash;how empty her death had left
-the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, that may be <i>his</i> way of courting,&rdquo; retorted Ellen. &ldquo;Men
-have all kinds of ways, I understand. But don&rsquo;t forget your promise,
-Rosemary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no need of my either forgetting or remembering it,&rdquo; said
-Rosemary, a little wearily. &ldquo;<i>You</i> forget that I&rsquo;m an old maid,
-Ellen. It is only your sisterly delusion that I am still young and blooming and
-dangerous. Mr. Meredith merely wants to be a friend&mdash;if he wants that much
-itself. He&rsquo;ll forget us both long before he gets back to the
-manse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no objection to your being friends with him,&rdquo; conceded
-Ellen, &ldquo;but it musn&rsquo;t go beyond friendship, remember. I&rsquo;m
-always suspicious of widowers. They are not given to romantic ideas about
-friendship. They&rsquo;re apt to mean business. As for this Presbyterian man,
-what do they call him shy for? He&rsquo;s not a bit shy, though he may be
-absent-minded&mdash;so absent-minded that he forgot to say goodnight to <i>me</i> when
-you started to go to the door with him. He&rsquo;s got brains, too.
-There&rsquo;s so few men round here that can talk sense to a body. I&rsquo;ve
-enjoyed the evening. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind seeing more of him. But no
-philandering, Rosemary, mind you&mdash;no philandering.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was quite used to being warned by Ellen from philandering if she so
-much as talked five minutes to any marriageable man under eighty or over
-eighteen. She had always laughed at the warning with unfeigned amusement. This
-time it did not amuse her&mdash;it irritated her a little. Who wanted to
-philander?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be such a goose, Ellen,&rdquo; she said with unaccustomed
-shortness as she took her lamp. She went upstairs without saying goodnight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen shook her head dubiously and looked at the black cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is she so cross about, St. George?&rdquo; she asked. &ldquo;When
-you howl you&rsquo;re hit, I&rsquo;ve always heard, George. But she promised,
-Saint&mdash;she promised, and we Wests always keep our word. So it won&rsquo;t
-matter if he does want to philander, George. She promised. I won&rsquo;t
-worry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Upstairs, in her room, Rosemary sat for a long while looking out of the window
-across the moonlit garden to the distant, shining harbour. She felt vaguely
-upset and unsettled. She was suddenly tired of outworn dreams. And in the
-garden the petals of the last red rose were scattered by a sudden little wind.
-Summer was over&mdash;it was autumn.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap14"></a>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
-MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL</h2>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith walked slowly home. At first he thought a little about Rosemary,
-but by the time he reached Rainbow Valley he had forgotten all about her and
-was meditating on a point regarding German theology which Ellen had raised. He
-passed through Rainbow Valley and knew it not. The charm of Rainbow Valley had
-no potency against German theology. When he reached the manse he went to his
-study and took down a bulky volume in order to see which had been right, he or
-Ellen. He remained immersed in its mazes until dawn, struck a new trail of
-speculation and pursued it like a sleuth hound for the next week, utterly lost
-to the world, his parish and his family. He read day and night; he forgot to go
-to his meals when Una was not there to drag him to them; he never thought about
-Rosemary or Ellen again. Old Mrs. Marshall, over-harbour, was very ill and sent
-for him, but the message lay unheeded on his desk and gathered dust. Mrs.
-Marshall recovered but never forgave him. A young couple came to the manse to
-be married and Mr. Meredith, with unbrushed hair, in carpet slippers and faded
-dressing gown, married them. To be sure, he began by reading the funeral
-service to them and got along as far as &ldquo;ashes to ashes and dust to
-dust&rdquo; before he vaguely suspected that something was wrong.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear me,&rdquo; he said absently, &ldquo;that is strange&mdash;very
-strange.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The bride, who was very nervous, began to cry. The bridegroom, who was not in
-the least nervous, giggled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Please, sir, I think you&rsquo;re burying us instead of marrying
-us,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Excuse me,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, as it it did not matter much. He
-turned up the marriage service and got through with it, but the bride never
-felt quite properly married for the rest of her life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He forgot his prayer-meeting again&mdash;but that did not matter, for it was a
-wet night and nobody came. He might even have forgotten his Sunday service if
-it had not been for Mrs. Alec Davis. Aunt Martha came in on Saturday afternoon
-and told him that Mrs. Davis was in the parlour and wanted to see him. Mr.
-Meredith sighed. Mrs. Davis was the only woman in Glen St. Mary church whom he
-positively detested. Unfortunately, she was also the richest, and his board of
-managers had warned Mr. Meredith against offending her. Mr. Meredith seldom
-thought of such a worldly matter as his stipend; but the managers were more
-practical. Also, they were astute. Without mentioning money, they contrived to
-instil into Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s mind a conviction that he should not offend
-Mrs. Davis. Otherwise, he would likely have forgotten all about her as soon as
-Aunt Martha had gone out. As it was, he turned down his Ewald with a feeling of
-annoyance and went across the hall to the parlour.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis was sitting on the sofa, looking about her with an air of scornful
-disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-What a scandalous room! There were no curtains on the window. Mrs. Davis did
-not know that Faith and Una had taken them down the day before to use as court
-trains in one of their plays and had forgotten to put them up again, but she
-could not have accused those windows more fiercely if she had known. The blinds
-were cracked and torn. The pictures on the walls were crooked; the rugs were
-awry; the vases were full of faded flowers; the dust lay in
-heaps&mdash;literally in heaps.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are we coming to?&rdquo; Mrs. Davis asked herself, and then primmed
-up her unbeautiful mouth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry and Carl had been whooping and sliding down the banisters as she came
-through the hall. They did not see her and continued whooping and sliding, and
-Mrs. Davis was convinced they did it on purpose. Faith&rsquo;s pet rooster
-ambled through the hall, stood in the parlour doorway and looked at her. Not
-liking her looks, he did not venture in. Mrs. Davis gave a scornful sniff. A
-pretty manse, indeed, where roosters paraded the halls and stared people out of
-countenance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shoo, there,&rdquo; commanded Mrs. Davis, poking her flounced,
-changeable-silk parasol at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Adam shooed. He was a wise rooster and Mrs. Davis had wrung the necks of so
-many roosters with her own fair hands in the course of her fifty years that an
-air of the executioner seemed to hang around her. Adam scuttled through the
-hall as the minister came in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith still wore slippers and dressing gown, and his dark hair still
-fell in uncared-for locks over his high brow. But he looked the gentleman he
-was; and Mrs. Alec Davis, in her silk dress and beplumed bonnet, and kid gloves
-and gold chain looked the vulgar, coarse-souled woman she was. Each felt the
-antagonisn of the other&rsquo;s personality. Mr. Meredith shrank, but Mrs.
-Davis girded up her loins for the fray. She had come to the manse to propose a
-certain thing to the minister and she meant to lose no time in proposing it.
-She was going to do him a favour&mdash;a great favour&mdash;and the sooner he
-was made aware of it the better. She had been thinking about it all summer and
-had come to a decision at last. This was all that mattered, Mrs. Davis thought.
-When she decided a thing it <i>was</i> decided. Nobody else had any say in the matter.
-That had always been her attitude. When she had made her mind up to marry Alec
-Davis she had married him and that was the end to it. Alec had never known how
-it happened, but what odds? So in this case&mdash;Mrs. Davis had arranged
-everything to her own satisfaction. Now it only remained to inform Mr.
-Meredith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you please shut that door?&rdquo; said Mrs. Davis, unprimming her
-mouth slightly to say it, but speaking with asperity. &ldquo;I have something
-important to say, and I can&rsquo;t say it with that racket in the hall.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith shut the door meekly. Then he sat down before Mrs. Davis. He was
-not wholly aware of her yet. His mind was still wrestling with Ewald&rsquo;s
-arguments. Mrs. Davis sensed this detachment and it annoyed her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come to tell you, Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; she said aggressively,
-&ldquo;that I have decided to adopt Una.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To&mdash;adopt&mdash;Una!&rdquo; Mr. Meredith gazed at her blankly, not
-understanding in the least.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. I&rsquo;ve been thinking it over for some time. I have often
-thought of adopting a child, since my husband&rsquo;s death. But it seemed so
-hard to get a suitable one. It is very few children I would want to take into
-<i>my</i> home. I wouldn&rsquo;t think of taking a home child&mdash;some outcast of
-the slums in all probability. And there is hardly ever any other child to be
-got. One of the fishermen down at the harbour died last fall and left six
-youngsters. They tried to get me to take one, but I soon gave them to
-understand that I had no idea of adopting trash like that. Their grandfather
-stole a horse. Besides, they were all boys and I wanted a girl&mdash;a quiet,
-obedient girl that I could train up to be a lady. Una will suit me exactly. She
-would be a nice little thing if she was properly looked after&mdash;so
-different from Faith. I would never dream of adopting Faith. But I&rsquo;ll
-take Una and I&rsquo;ll give her a good home, and up-bringing, Mr. Meredith,
-and if she behaves herself I&rsquo;ll leave her all my money when I die. Not
-one of my own relatives shall have a cent of it in any case, I&rsquo;m
-determined on that. It was the idea of aggravating them that set me to thinking
-of adopting a child as much as anything in the first place. Una shall be well
-dressed and educated and trained, Mr. Meredith, and I shall give her music and
-painting lessons and treat her as if she was my own.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith was wide enough awake by this time. There was a faint flush in his
-pale cheek and a dangerous light in his fine dark eyes. Was this woman, whose
-vulgarity and consciousness of money oozed out of her at every pore, actually
-asking him to give her Una&mdash;his dear little wistful Una with
-Cecilia&rsquo;s own dark-blue eyes&mdash;the child whom the dying mother had
-clasped to her heart after the other children had been led weeping from the
-room. Cecilia had clung to her baby until the gates of death had shut between
-them. She had looked over the little dark head to her husband.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Take good care of her, John,&rdquo; she had entreated. &ldquo;She is so
-small&mdash;and sensitive. The others can fight their way&mdash;but the world
-will hurt <i>her</i>. Oh, John, I don&rsquo;t know what you and she are going to do.
-You both need me so much. But keep her close to you&mdash;keep her close to
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-These had been almost her last words except a few unforgettable ones for him
-alone. And it was this child whom Mrs. Davis had coolly announced her intention
-of taking from him. He sat up straight and looked at Mrs. Davis. In spite of
-the worn dressing gown and the frayed slippers there was something about him
-that made Mrs. Davis feel a little of the old reverence for &ldquo;the
-cloth&rdquo; in which she had been brought up. After all, there <i>was</i> a certain
-divinity hedging a minister, even a poor, unworldly, abstracted one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thank you for your kind intentions, Mrs. Davis,&rdquo; said Mr.
-Meredith with a gentle, final, quite awful courtesy, &ldquo;but I cannot give
-you my child.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis looked blank. She had never dreamed of his refusing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; she said in astonishment. &ldquo;You must be
-cr&mdash;you can&rsquo;t mean it. You must think it over&mdash;think of all the
-advantages I can give her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no need to think it over, Mrs. Davis. It is entirely out of the
-question. All the worldly advantages it is in your power to bestow on her could
-not compensate for the loss of a father&rsquo;s love and care. I thank you
-again&mdash;but it is not to be thought of.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Disappointment angered Mrs. Davis beyond the power of old habit to control. Her
-broad red face turned purple and her voice trembled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought you&rsquo;d be only too glad to let me have her,&rdquo; she
-sneered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you think that?&rdquo; asked Mr. Meredith quietly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because nobody ever supposed you cared anything about any of your
-children,&rdquo; retorted Mrs. Davis contemptuously. &ldquo;You neglect them
-scandalously. It is the talk of the place. They aren&rsquo;t fed and dressed
-properly, and they&rsquo;re not trained at all. They have no more manners than
-a pack of wild Indians. You never think of doing your duty as a father. You let
-a stray child come here among them for a fortnight and never took any notice of
-her&mdash;a child that swore like a trooper I&rsquo;m told. <i>You</i> wouldn&rsquo;t
-have cared if they&rsquo;d caught small-pox from her. And Faith made an
-exhibition of herself getting up in preaching and making that speech! And she
-rid a pig down the street&mdash;under your very eyes I understand. The way they
-act is past belief and you never lift a finger to stop them or try to teach
-them anything. And now when I offer one of them a good home and good prospects
-you refuse it and insult me. A pretty father you, to talk of loving and caring
-for your children!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That will do, woman!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. He stood up and looked at
-Mrs. Davis with eyes that made her quail. &ldquo;That will do,&rdquo; he
-repeated. &ldquo;I desire to hear no more, Mrs. Davis. You have said too much.
-It may be that I have been remiss in some respects in my duty as a parent, but
-it is not for you to remind me of it in such terms as you have used. Let us say
-good afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis did not say anything half so amiable as good afternoon, but she took
-her departure. As she swept past the minister a large, plump toad, which Carl
-had secreted under the lounge, hopped out almost under her feet. Mrs. Davis
-gave a shriek and in trying to avoid treading on the awful thing, lost her
-balance and her parasol. She did not exactly fall, but she staggered and reeled
-across the room in a very undignified fashion and brought up against the door
-with a thud that jarred her from head to foot. Mr. Meredith, who had not seen
-the toad, wondered if she had been attacked with some kind of apoplectic or
-paralytic seizure, and ran in alarm to her assistance. But Mrs. Davis,
-recovering her feet, waved him back furiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you dare to touch me,&rdquo; she almost shouted. &ldquo;This
-is some more of your children&rsquo;s doings, I suppose. This is no fit place
-for a decent woman. Give me my umbrella and let me go. I&rsquo;ll never darken
-the doors of your manse or your church again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith picked up the gorgeous parasol meekly enough and gave it to her.
-Mrs. Davis seized it and marched out. Jerry and Carl had given up banister
-sliding and were sitting on the edge of the veranda with Faith. Unfortunately,
-all three were singing at the tops of their healthy young voices
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;ll be a hot time in the old town to-night.&rdquo; Mrs. Davis
-believed the song was meant for her and her only. She stopped and shook her
-parasol at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your father is a fool,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and you are three young
-varmints that ought to be whipped within an inch of your lives.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re not,&rdquo; cried
-the boys. But Mrs. Davis was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Goodness, isn&rsquo;t she mad!&rdquo; said Jerry. &ldquo;And what is a
-&lsquo;varmint&rsquo; anyhow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith paced up and down the parlour for a few minutes; then he went
-back to his study and sat down. But he did not return to his German theology.
-He was too grievously disturbed for that. Mrs. Davis had wakened him up with a
-vengeance. <i>Was</i> he such a remiss, careless father as she had accused him of
-being? <i>Had</i> he so scandalously neglected the bodily and spiritual welfare of the
-four little motherless creatures dependent on him? <i>Were</i> his people talking of
-it as harshly as Mrs. Davis had declared? It must be so, since Mrs. Davis had
-come to ask for Una in the full and confident belief that he would hand the
-child over to her as unconcernedly and gladly as one might hand over a strayed,
-unwelcome kitten. And, if so, what then?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith groaned and resumed his pacing up and down the dusty, disordered
-room. What could he do? He loved his children as deeply as any father could and
-he knew, past the power of Mrs. Davis or any of her ilk, to disturb his
-conviction, that they loved him devotedly. But <i>was</i> he fit to have charge of
-them? He knew&mdash;none better&mdash;his weaknesses and limitations. What was
-needed was a good woman&rsquo;s presence and influence and common sense. But
-how could that be arranged? Even were he able to get such a housekeeper it
-would cut Aunt Martha to the quick. She believed she could still do all that
-was meet and necessary. He could not so hurt and insult the poor old woman who
-had been so kind to him and his. How devoted she had been to Cecilia! And
-Cecilia had asked him to be very considerate of Aunt Martha. To be sure, he
-suddenly remembered that Aunt Martha had once hinted that he ought to marry
-again. He felt she would not resent a wife as she would a housekeeper. But that
-was out of the question. He did not wish to marry&mdash;he did not and could
-not care for anyone. Then what could he do? It suddenly occurred to him that he
-would go over to Ingleside and talk over his difficulties with Mrs. Blythe.
-Mrs. Blythe was one of the few women he never felt shy or tongue-tied with. She
-was always so sympathetic and refreshing. It might be that she could suggest
-some solution of his problems. And even if she could not Mr. Meredith felt that
-he needed a little decent human companionship after his dose of Mrs.
-Davis&mdash;something to take the taste of her out of his soul.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He dressed hurriedly and ate his supper less abstractedly than usual. It
-occurred to him that it was a poor meal. He looked at his children; they were
-rosy and healthy looking enough&mdash;except Una, and she had never been very
-strong even when her mother was alive. They were all laughing and
-talking&mdash;certainly they seemed happy. Carl was especially happy because he
-had two most beautiful spiders crawling around his supper plate. Their voices
-were pleasant, their manners did not seem bad, they were considerate of and
-gentle to one another. Yet Mrs. Davis had said their behaviour was the talk of
-the congregation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As Mr. Meredith went through his gate Dr. Blythe and Mrs. Blythe drove past on
-the road that led to Lowbridge. The minister&rsquo;s face fell. Mrs. Blythe was
-going away&mdash;there was no use in going to Ingleside. And he craved a little
-companionship more than ever. As he gazed rather hopelessly over the landscape
-the sunset light struck on a window of the old West homestead on the hill. It
-flared out rosily like a beacon of good hope. He suddenly remembered Rosemary
-and Ellen West. He thought that he would relish some of Ellen&rsquo;s pungent
-conversation. He thought it would be pleasant to see Rosemary&rsquo;s slow,
-sweet smile and calm, heavenly blue eyes again. What did that old poem of Sir
-Philip Sidney&rsquo;s say?&mdash;&ldquo;continual comfort in a
-face&rdquo;&mdash;that just suited her. And he needed comfort. Why not go and
-call? He remembered that Ellen had asked him to drop in sometimes and there was
-Rosemary&rsquo;s book to take back&mdash;he ought to take it back before he
-forgot. He had an uneasy suspicion that there were a great many books in his
-library which he had borrowed at sundry times and in divers places and had
-forgotten to take back. It was surely his duty to guard against that in this
-case. He went back into his study, got the book, and plunged downward into
-Rainbow Valley.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap15"></a>CHAPTER XV.<br />
-MORE GOSSIP</h2>
-
-<p>
-On the evening after Mrs. Myra Murray of the over-harbour section had been
-buried Miss Cornelia and Mary Vance came up to Ingleside. There were several
-things concerning which Miss Cornelia wished to unburden her soul. The funeral
-had to be all talked over, of course. Susan and Miss Cornelia thrashed this out
-between them; Anne took no part or delight in such goulish conversations. She
-sat a little apart and watched the autumnal flame of dahlias in the garden, and
-the dreaming, glamorous harbour of the September sunset. Mary Vance sat beside
-her, knitting meekly. Mary&rsquo;s heart was down in the Rainbow Valley, whence
-came sweet, distance-softened sounds of children&rsquo;s laughter, but her
-fingers were under Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s eye. She had to knit so many rounds of
-her stocking before she might go to the valley. Mary knit and held her tongue,
-but used her ears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never saw a nicer looking corpse,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-judicially. &ldquo;Myra Murray was always a pretty woman&mdash;she was a Corey
-from Lowbridge and the Coreys were noted for their good looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said to the corpse as I passed it, &lsquo;poor woman. I hope you are
-as happy as you look.&rsquo;&rdquo; sighed Susan. &ldquo;She had not changed
-much. That dress she wore was the black satin she got for her daughter&rsquo;s
-wedding fourteen years ago. Her Aunt told her then to keep it for her funeral,
-but Myra laughed and said, &lsquo;I may wear it to my funeral, Aunty, but I
-will have a good time out of it first.&rsquo; And I may say she did. Myra
-Murray was not a woman to attend her own funeral before she died. Many a time
-afterwards when I saw her enjoying herself out in company I thought to myself,
-&lsquo;You are a handsome woman, Myra Murray, and that dress becomes you, but
-it will likely be your shroud at last.&rsquo; And you see my words have come
-true, Mrs. Marshall Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan sighed again heavily. She was enjoying herself hugely. A funeral was
-really a delightful subject of conversation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I always liked to meet Myra,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She was
-always so gay and cheerful&mdash;she made you feel better just by her
-handshake. Myra always made the best of things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is true,&rdquo; asserted Susan. &ldquo;Her sister-in-law told me
-that when the doctor told her at last that he could do nothing for her and she
-would never rise from that bed again, Myra said quite cheerfully, &lsquo;Well,
-if that is so, I&rsquo;m thankful the preserving is all done, and I will not
-have to face the fall house-cleaning. I always liked house-cleaning in
-spring,&rsquo; she says, &lsquo;but I always hated it in the fall. I will get
-clear of it this year, thank goodness.&rsquo; There are people who would call
-that levity, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and I think her sister-in-law was a little
-ashamed of it. She said perhaps her sickness had made Myra a little
-light-headed. But I said, &lsquo;No, Mrs. Murray, do not worry over it. It was
-just Myra&rsquo;s way of looking at the bright side.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Her sister Luella was just the opposite,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;There was no bright side for Luella&mdash;there was just black and
-shades of gray. For years she used always to be declaring she was going to die
-in a week or so. &lsquo;I won&rsquo;t be here to burden you long,&rsquo; she
-would tell her family with a groan. And if any of them ventured to talk about
-their little future plans she&rsquo;d groan also and say, &lsquo;Ah, <i>I</i>
-won&rsquo;t be here then.&rsquo; When I went to see her I always agreed with
-her and it made her so mad that she was always quite a lot better for several
-days afterwards. She has better health now but no more cheerfulness. Myra was
-so different. She was always doing or saying something to make some one feel
-good. Perhaps the men they married had something to do with it. Luella&rsquo;s
-man was a Tartar, believe <i>me</i>, while Jim Murray was decent, as men go. He looked
-heart-broken to-day. It isn&rsquo;t often I feel sorry for a man at his
-wife&rsquo;s funeral, but I did feel for Jim Murray.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No wonder he looked sad. He will not get a wife like Myra again in a
-hurry,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;Maybe he will not try, since his children are
-all grown up and Mirabel is able to keep house. But there is no predicting what
-a widower may or may not do and I, for one, will not try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll miss Myra terrible in church,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;She was such a worker. Nothing ever stumped <i>her</i>. If she couldn&rsquo;t
-get over a difficulty she&rsquo;d get around it, and if she couldn&rsquo;t get
-around it she&rsquo;d pretend it wasn&rsquo;t there&mdash;and generally it
-wasn&rsquo;t. &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll keep a stiff upper lip to my journey&rsquo;s
-end,&rsquo; said she to me once. Well, she has ended her journey.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think so?&rdquo; asked Anne suddenly, coming back from dreamland.
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t picture <i>her</i> journey as being ended. Can <i>you</i> think of her
-sitting down and folding her hands&mdash;that eager, asking spirit of hers,
-with its fine adventurous outlook? No, I think in death she just opened a gate
-and went through&mdash;on&mdash;on&mdash;to new, shining adventures.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe&mdash;maybe,&rdquo; assented Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Do you know,
-Anne dearie, I never was much taken with this everlasting rest doctrine
-myself&mdash;though I hope it isn&rsquo;t heresy to say so. I want to bustle
-round in heaven the same as here. And I hope there&rsquo;ll be a celestial
-substitute for pies and doughnuts&mdash;something that has to be MADE. Of
-course, one does get awful tired at times&mdash;and the older you are the
-tireder you get. But the very tiredest could get rested in something short of
-eternity, you&rsquo;d think&mdash;except, perhaps, a lazy man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When I meet Myra Murray again,&rdquo; said Anne, &ldquo;I want to see
-her coming towards me, brisk and laughing, just as she always did here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan, in a shocked tone, &ldquo;you
-surely do not think that Myra will be laughing in the world to come?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not, Susan? Do you think we will be crying there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, Mrs. Dr. dear, do not misunderstand me. I do not think we shall
-be either crying or laughing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Susan, driven to it, &ldquo;it is my opinion, Mrs. Dr.
-dear, that we shall just look solemn and holy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And do you really think, Susan,&rdquo; said Anne, looking solemn enough,
-&ldquo;that either Myra Murray or I could look solemn and holy all the
-time&mdash;<i>all</i> the time, Susan?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; admitted Susan reluctantly, &ldquo;I might go so far as to
-say that you both would have to smile now and again, but I can never admit that
-there will be laughing in heaven. The idea seems really irreverent, Mrs. Dr.
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, to come back to earth,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;who can
-we get to take Myra&rsquo;s class in Sunday School? Julia Clow has been
-teaching it since Myra took ill, but she&rsquo;s going to town for the winter
-and we&rsquo;ll have to get somebody else.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I heard that Mrs. Laurie Jamieson wanted it,&rdquo; said Anne.
-&ldquo;The Jamiesons have come to church very regularly since they moved to the
-Glen from Lowbridge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;New brooms!&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia dubiously. &ldquo;Wait till
-they&rsquo;ve gone regularly for a year.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You cannot depend on Mrs. Jamieson a bit, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said
-Susan solemnly. &ldquo;She died once and when they were measuring her for her
-coffin, after laying her out just beautiful, did she not go and come back to
-life! Now, Mrs. Dr. dear, you know you <i>cannot</i> depend on a woman like
-that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She might turn Methodist at any moment,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;They tell me they went to the Methodist Church at Lowbridge quite as
-often as to the Presbyterian. I haven&rsquo;t caught them at it here yet, but I
-would not approve of taking Mrs. Jamieson into the Sunday School. Yet we must
-not offend them. We are losing too many people, by death or bad temper. Mrs.
-Alec Davis has left the church, no one knows why. She told the managers that
-she would never pay another cent to Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s salary. Of course,
-most people say that the children offended her, but somehow I don&rsquo;t think
-so. I tried to pump Faith, but all I could get out of her was that Mrs. Davis
-had come, seemingly in high good humour, to see her father, and had left in an
-awful rage, calling them all &lsquo;varmints!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Varmints, indeed!&rdquo; said Susan furiously. &ldquo;Does Mrs. Alec
-Davis forget that her uncle on her mother&rsquo;s side was suspected of
-poisoning his wife? Not that it was ever proved, Mrs. Dr. dear, and it does not
-do to believe all you hear. But if <i>I</i> had an uncle whose wife died
-without any satisfactory reason, <i>I</i> would not go about the country
-calling innocent children varmints.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The point is,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;that Mrs. Davis paid a
-large subscription, and how its loss is going to be made up is a problem. And
-if she turns the other Douglases against Mr. Meredith, as she will certainly
-try to do, he will just have to go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not think Mrs. Alec Davis is very well liked by the rest of the
-clan,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;It is not likely she will be able to influence
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But those Douglases all hang together so. If you touch one, you touch
-all. We can&rsquo;t do without them, so much is certain. They pay half the
-salary. They are not mean, whatever else may be said of them. Norman Douglas
-used to give a hundred a year long ago before he left.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did he leave for?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He declared a member of the session cheated him in a cow deal. He
-hasn&rsquo;t come to church for twenty years. His wife used to come regular
-while she was alive, poor thing, but he never would let her pay anything,
-except one red cent every Sunday. She felt dreadfully humiliated. I don&rsquo;t
-know that he was any too good a husband to her, though she was never heard to
-complain. But she always had a cowed look. Norman Douglas didn&rsquo;t get the
-woman he wanted thirty years ago and the Douglases never liked to put up with
-second best.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who was the woman he did want.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen West. They weren&rsquo;t engaged exactly, I believe, but they went
-about together for two years. And then they just broke off&mdash;nobody ever
-knew why. Just some silly quarrel, I suppose. And Norman went and married
-Hester Reese before his temper had time to cool&mdash;married her just to spite
-Ellen, I haven&rsquo;t a doubt. So like a man! Hester was a nice little thing,
-but she never had much spirit and he broke what little she had. She was too
-meek for Norman. He needed a woman who could stand up to him. Ellen would have
-kept him in fine order and he would have liked her all the better for it. He
-despised Hester, that is the truth, just because she always gave in to him. I
-used to hear him say many a time, long ago when he was a young fellow
-&lsquo;Give me a spunky woman&mdash;spunk for me every time.&rsquo; And then he
-went and married a girl who couldn&rsquo;t say boo to a goose&mdash;man-like.
-That family of Reeses were just vegetables. They went through the motions of
-living, but they didn&rsquo;t <i>live</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Russell Reese used his first wife&rsquo;s wedding-ring to marry his
-second,&rdquo; said Susan reminiscently. &ldquo;That was <i>too</i> economical in my
-opinion, Mrs. Dr. dear. And his brother John has his own tombstone put up in
-the over-harbour graveyard, with everything on it but the date of death, and he
-goes and looks at it every Sunday. Most folks would not consider that much fun,
-but it is plain he does. People do have such different ideas of enjoyment. As
-for Norman Douglas, he is a perfect heathen. When the last minister asked him
-why he never went to church he said &lsquo;Too many ugly women there,
-parson&mdash;too many ugly women!&rsquo; I should like to go to such a man,
-Mrs. Dr. dear, and say to him solemnly, &lsquo;There is a hell!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Norman doesn&rsquo;t believe there is such a place,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;I hope he&rsquo;ll find out his mistake when he comes to die.
-There, Mary, you&rsquo;ve knit your three inches and you can go and play with
-the children for half an hour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary needed no second bidding. She flew to Rainbow Valley with a heart as light
-as her heels, and in the course of conversation told Faith Meredith all about
-Mrs. Alec Davis.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And Mrs. Elliott says that she&rsquo;ll turn all the Douglases against
-your father and then he&rsquo;ll have to leave the Glen because his salary
-won&rsquo;t be paid,&rdquo; concluded Mary. &ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t know
-what is to be done, honest to goodness. If only old Norman Douglas would come
-back to church and pay, it wouldn&rsquo;t be so bad. But he
-won&rsquo;t&mdash;and the Douglases will leave&mdash;and you all will have to
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith carried a heavy heart to bed with her that night. The thought of leaving
-the Glen was unbearable. Nowhere else in the world were there such chums as the
-Blythes. Her little heart had been wrung when they had left Maywater&mdash;she
-had shed many bitter tears when she parted with Maywater chums and the old
-manse there where her mother had lived and died. She could not contemplate
-calmly the thought of such another and harder wrench. She <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i> leave
-Glen St. Mary and dear Rainbow Valley and that delicious graveyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s awful to be minister&rsquo;s family,&rdquo; groaned Faith
-into her pillow. &ldquo;Just as soon as you get fond of a place you are torn up
-by the roots. I&rsquo;ll never, never, <i>never</i> marry a minister, no matter how
-nice he is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith sat up in bed and looked out of the little vine-hung window. The night
-was very still, the silence broken only by Una&rsquo;s soft breathing. Faith
-felt terribly alone in the world. She could see Glen St. Mary lying under the
-starry blue meadows of the autumn night. Over the valley a light shone from the
-girls&rsquo; room at Ingleside, and another from Walter&rsquo;s room. Faith
-wondered if poor Walter had toothache again. Then she sighed, with a little
-passing sigh of envy of Nan and Di. They had a mother and a settled
-home&mdash;<i>they</i> were not at the mercy of people who got angry without any
-reason and called you a varmint. Away beyond the Glen, amid fields that were
-very quiet with sleep, another light was burning. Faith knew it shone in the
-house where Norman Douglas lived. He was reputed to sit up all hours of the
-night reading. Mary had said if he could only be induced to return to the
-church all would be well. And why not? Faith looked at a big, low star hanging
-over the tall, pointed spruce at the gate of the Methodist Church and had an
-inspiration. She knew what ought to be done and she, Faith Meredith, would do
-it. She would make everything right. With a sigh of satisfaction, she turned
-from the lonely, dark world and cuddled down beside Una.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap16"></a>CHAPTER XVI.<br />
-TIT FOR TAT</h2>
-
-<p>
-With Faith, to decide was to act. She lost no time in carrying out the idea. As
-soon as she came home from school the next day she left the manse and made her
-way down the Glen. Walter Blythe joined her as she passed the post office.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to Mrs. Elliott&rsquo;s on an errand for mother,&rdquo;
-he said. &ldquo;Where are you going, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going somewhere on church business,&rdquo; said Faith loftily. She
-did not volunteer any further information and Walter felt rather snubbed. They
-walked on in silence for a little while. It was a warm, windy evening with a
-sweet, resinous air. Beyond the sand dunes were gray seas, soft and beautiful.
-The Glen brook bore down a freight of gold and crimson leaves, like fairy
-shallops. In Mr. James Reese&rsquo;s buckwheat stubble-land, with its beautiful
-tones of red and brown, a crow parliament was being held, whereat solemn
-deliberations regarding the welfare of crowland were in progress. Faith cruelly
-broke up the august assembly by climbing up on the fence and hurling a broken
-rail at it. Instantly the air was filled with flapping black wings and
-indignant caws.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you do that?&rdquo; said Walter reproachfully. &ldquo;They were
-having such a good time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I hate crows,&rdquo; said Faith airily. &ldquo;The are so black and
-sly I feel sure they&rsquo;re hypocrites. They steal little birds&rsquo; eggs
-out of their nests, you know. I saw one do it on our lawn last spring. Walter,
-what makes you so pale to-day? Did you have the toothache again last
-night?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;a raging one. I couldn&rsquo;t sleep a wink&mdash;so I just
-paced up and down the floor and imagined I was an early Christian martyr being
-tortured at the command of Nero. That helped ever so much for a while&mdash;and
-then I got so bad I couldn&rsquo;t imagine anything.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you cry?&rdquo; asked Faith anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;but I lay down on the floor and groaned,&rdquo; admitted
-Walter. &ldquo;Then the girls came in and Nan put cayenne pepper in
-it&mdash;and that made it worse&mdash;Di made me hold a swallow of cold water
-in my mouth&mdash;and I couldn&rsquo;t stand it, so they called Susan. Susan
-said it served me right for sitting up in the cold garret yesterday writing
-poetry trash. But she started up the kitchen fire and got me a hot-water bottle
-and it stopped the toothache. As soon as I felt better I told Susan my poetry
-wasn&rsquo;t trash and she wasn&rsquo;t any judge. And she said no, thank
-goodness she was not and she did not know anything about poetry except that it
-was mostly a lot of lies. Now you know, Faith, that isn&rsquo;t so. That is one
-reason why I like writing poetry&mdash;you can say so many things in it that
-are true in poetry but wouldn&rsquo;t be true in prose. I told Susan so, but
-she said to stop my jawing and go to sleep before the water got cold, or
-she&rsquo;d leave me to see if rhyming would cure toothache, and she hoped it
-would be a lesson to me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you go to the dentist at Lowbridge and get the tooth
-out?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They want me to&mdash;but I can&rsquo;t. It would hurt so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you afraid of a little pain?&rdquo; asked Faith contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter flushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It would be a <i>big</i> pain. I hate being hurt. Father said he wouldn&rsquo;t
-insist on my going&mdash;he&rsquo;d wait until I&rsquo;d made up my own mind to
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t hurt as long as the toothache,&rdquo; argued Faith,
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve had five spells of toothache. If you&rsquo;d just go and
-have it out there&rsquo;d be no more bad nights. <i>I</i> had a tooth out once.
-I yelled for a moment, but it was all over then&mdash;only the bleeding.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The bleeding is worst of all&mdash;it&rsquo;s so ugly,&rdquo; cried
-Walter. &ldquo;It just made me sick when Jem cut his foot last summer. Susan
-said I looked more like fainting than Jem did. But I couldn&rsquo;t bear to see
-Jem hurt, either. Somebody is always getting hurt, Faith&mdash;and it&rsquo;s
-awful. I just can&rsquo;t <i>bear</i> to see things hurt. It makes me just want to
-run&mdash;and run&mdash;and run&mdash;till I can&rsquo;t hear or see
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no use making a fuss over anyone getting hurt,&rdquo; said
-Faith, tossing her curls. &ldquo;Of course, if you&rsquo;ve hurt yourself very
-bad, you have to yell&mdash;and blood <i>is</i> messy&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t like
-seeing other people hurt, either. But I don&rsquo;t want to run&mdash;I want to
-go to work and help them. Your father <i>has</i> to hurt people lots of times to cure
-them. What would they do if <i>he</i> ran away?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t say I <i>would</i> run. I said I <i>wanted</i> to run. That&rsquo;s a
-different thing. I want to help people, too. But oh, I wish there weren&rsquo;t
-any ugly, dreadful things in the world. I wish everything was glad and
-beautiful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, don&rsquo;t let&rsquo;s think of what isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said
-Faith. &ldquo;After all, there&rsquo;s lots of fun in being alive. You
-wouldn&rsquo;t have toothache if you were dead, but still, wouldn&rsquo;t you
-lots rather be alive than dead? I would, a hundred times. Oh, here&rsquo;s Dan
-Reese. He&rsquo;s been down to the harbour for fish.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate Dan Reese,&rdquo; said Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So do I. All us girls do. I&rsquo;m just going to walk past and never
-take the least notice of him. You watch me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith accordingly stalked past Dan with her chin out and an expression of scorn
-that bit into his soul. He turned and shouted after her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pig-girl! Pig-girl!! Pig-girl!!!&rdquo; in a crescendo of insult.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith walked on, seemingly oblivious. But her lip trembled slightly with a
-sense of outrage. She knew she was no match for Dan Reese when it came to an
-exchange of epithets. She wished Jem Blythe had been with her instead of
-Walter. If Dan Reese had dared to call her a pig-girl in Jem&rsquo;s hearing,
-Jem would have wiped up the dust with him. But it never occurred to Faith to
-expect Walter to do it, or blame him for not doing it. Walter, she knew, never
-fought other boys. Neither did Charlie Clow of the north road. The strange part
-was that, while she despised Charlie for a coward, it never occurred to her to
-disdain Walter. It was simply that he seemed to her an inhabitant of a world of
-his own, where different traditions prevailed. Faith would as soon have
-expected a starry-eyed young angel to pummel dirty, freckled Dan Reese for her
-as Walter Blythe. She would not have blamed the angel and she did not blame
-Walter Blythe. But she wished that sturdy Jem or Jerry had been there and
-Dan&rsquo;s insult continued to rankle in her soul.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter was pale no longer. He had flushed crimson and his beautiful eyes were
-clouded with shame and anger. He knew that he ought to have avenged Faith. Jem
-would have sailed right in and made Dan eat his words with bitter sauce.
-Ritchie Warren would have overwhelmed Dan with worse &ldquo;names&rdquo; than
-Dan had called Faith. But Walter could not&mdash;simply could
-not&mdash;&ldquo;call names.&rdquo; He knew he would get the worst of it. He
-could never conceive or utter the vulgar, ribald insults of which Dan Reese had
-unlimited command. And as for the trial by fist, Walter couldn&rsquo;t fight.
-He hated the idea. It was rough and painful&mdash;and, worst of all, it was
-ugly. He never could understand Jem&rsquo;s exultation in an occasional
-conflict. But he wished he <i>could</i> fight Dan Reese. He was horribly ashamed
-because Faith Meredith had been insulted in his presence and he had not tried
-to punish her insulter. He felt sure she must despise him. She had not even
-spoken to him since Dan had called her pig-girl. He was glad when they came to
-the parting of the ways.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith, too, was relieved, though for a different reason. She wanted to be alone
-because she suddenly felt rather nervous about her errand. Impulse had cooled,
-especially since Dan had bruised her self-respect. She must go through with it,
-but she no longer had enthusiasm to sustain her. She was going to see Norman
-Douglas and ask him to come back to church, and she began to be afraid of him.
-What had seemed so easy and simple up at the Glen seemed very different down
-here. She had heard a good deal about Norman Douglas, and she knew that even
-the biggest boys in school were afraid of him. Suppose he called her something
-nasty&mdash;she had heard he was given to that. Faith could not endure being
-called names&mdash;they subdued her far more quickly than a physical blow. But
-she would go on&mdash;Faith Meredith always went on. If she did not her father
-might have to leave the Glen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the end of the long lane Faith came to the house&mdash;a big, old-fashioned
-one with a row of soldierly Lombardies marching past it. On the back veranda
-Norman Douglas himself was sitting, reading a newspaper. His big dog was beside
-him. Behind, in the kitchen, where his housekeeper, Mrs. Wilson, was getting
-supper, there was a clatter of dishes&mdash;an angry clatter, for Norman
-Douglas had just had a quarrel with Mrs. Wilson, and both were in a very bad
-temper over it. Consequently, when Faith stepped on the veranda and Norman
-Douglas lowered his newspaper she found herself looking into the choleric eyes
-of an irritated man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman Douglas was rather a fine-looking personage in his way. He had a sweep
-of long red beard over his broad chest and a mane of red hair, ungrizzled by
-the years, on his massive head. His high, white forehead was unwrinkled and his
-blue eyes could flash still with all the fire of his tempestuous youth. He
-could be very amiable when he liked, and he could be very terrible. Poor Faith,
-so anxiously bent on retrieving the situation in regard to the church, had
-caught him in one of his terrible moods.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not know who she was and he gazed at her with disfavour. Norman Douglas
-liked girls of spirit and flame and laughter. At this moment Faith was very
-pale. She was of the type to which colour means everything. Lacking her crimson
-cheeks she seemed meek and even insignificant. She looked apologetic and
-afraid, and the bully in Norman Douglas&rsquo;s heart stirred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who the dickens are you? And what do you want here?&rdquo; he demanded
-in his great resounding voice, with a fierce scowl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For once in her life Faith had nothing to say. She had never supposed Norman
-Douglas was like <i>this</i>. She was paralyzed with terror of him. He saw it and it
-made him worse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter with you?&rdquo; he boomed. &ldquo;You look as
-if you wanted to say something and was scared to say it. What&rsquo;s troubling
-you? Confound it, speak up, can&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No. Faith could not speak up. No words would come. But her lips began to
-tremble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For heaven&rsquo;s sake, don&rsquo;t cry,&rdquo; shouted Norman.
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t stand snivelling. If you&rsquo;ve anything to say, say it
-and have done. Great Kitty, is the girl possessed of a dumb spirit? Don&rsquo;t
-look at me like that&mdash;I&rsquo;m human&mdash;I haven&rsquo;t got a tail!
-Who are you&mdash;who are you, I say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman&rsquo;s voice could have been heard at the harbour. Operations in the
-kitchen were suspended. Mrs. Wilson was listening open-eared and eyed. Norman
-put his huge brown hands on his knees and leaned forward, staring into
-Faith&rsquo;s pallid, shrinking face. He seemed to loom over her like some evil
-giant out of a fairy tale. She felt as if he would eat her up next thing, body
-and bones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;am&mdash;Faith&mdash;Meredith,&rdquo; she said, in little more
-than a whisper.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Meredith, hey? One of the parson&rsquo;s youngsters, hey? I&rsquo;ve
-heard of you&mdash;I&rsquo;ve heard of you! Riding on pigs and breaking the
-Sabbath! A nice lot! What do you want here, hey? What do you want of the old
-pagan, hey? <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t ask favours of parsons&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t
-give any. What do you want, I say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith wished herself a thousand miles away. She stammered out her thought in
-its naked simplicity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I came&mdash;to ask you&mdash;to go to church&mdash;and pay&mdash;to the
-salary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman glared at her. Then he burst forth again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You impudent hussy&mdash;you! Who put you up to it, jade? Who put you up
-to it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nobody,&rdquo; said poor Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a lie. Don&rsquo;t lie to me! Who sent you here? It
-wasn&rsquo;t your father&mdash;he hasn&rsquo;t the smeddum of a flea&mdash;but
-he wouldn&rsquo;t send you to do what he dassn&rsquo;t do himself. I suppose it
-was some of them confounded old maids at the Glen, was it&mdash;was it,
-hey?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;I&mdash;I just came myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you take me for a fool?&rdquo; shouted Norman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;I thought you were a gentleman,&rdquo; said Faith faintly, and
-certainly without any thought of being sarcastic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman bounced up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mind your own business. I don&rsquo;t want to hear another word from
-you. If you wasn&rsquo;t such a kid I&rsquo;d teach you to interfere in what
-doesn&rsquo;t concern you. When I want parsons or pill-dosers I&rsquo;ll send
-for them. Till I do I&rsquo;ll have no truck with them. Do you understand? Now,
-get out, cheese-face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith got out. She stumbled blindly down the steps, out of the yard gate and
-into the lane. Half way up the lane her daze of fear passed away and a reaction
-of tingling anger possessed her. By the time she reached the end of the lane
-she was in such a furious temper as she had never experienced before. Norman
-Douglas&rsquo; insults burned in her soul, kindling a scorching flame. Go home!
-Not she! She would go straight back and tell that old ogre just what she
-thought of him&mdash;she would show him&mdash;oh, wouldn&rsquo;t she!
-Cheese-face, indeed!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unhesitatingly she turned and walked back. The veranda was deserted and the
-kitchen door shut. Faith opened the door without knocking, and went in. Norman
-Douglas had just sat down at the supper table, but he still held his newspaper.
-Faith walked inflexibly across the room, caught the paper from his hand, flung
-it on the floor and stamped on it. Then she faced him, with her flashing eyes
-and scarlet cheeks. She was such a handsome young fury that Norman Douglas
-hardly recognized her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s brought you back?&rdquo; he growled, but more in
-bewilderment than rage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unquailingly she glared back into the angry eyes against which so few people
-could hold their own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come back to tell you exactly what I think of you,&rdquo; said
-Faith in clear, ringing tones. &ldquo;I am not afraid of you. You are a rude,
-unjust, tyrannical, disagreeable old man. Susan says you are sure to go to
-hell, and I was sorry for you, but I am not now. Your wife never had a new hat
-for ten years&mdash;no wonder she died. I am going to make faces at you
-whenever I see you after this. Every time I am behind you you will know what is
-happening. Father has a picture of the devil in a book in his study, and I mean
-to go home and write your name under it. You are an old vampire and I hope
-you&rsquo;ll have the Scotch fiddle!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did not know what a vampire meant any more than she knew what the Scotch
-fiddle was. She had heard Susan use the expressions and gathered from her tone
-that both were dire things. But Norman Douglas knew what the latter meant at
-least. He had listened in absolute silence to Faith&rsquo;s tirade. When she
-paused for breath, with a stamp of her foot, he suddenly burst into loud
-laughter. With a mighty slap of hand on knee he exclaimed,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I vow you&rsquo;ve got spunk, after all&mdash;I like spunk. Come, sit
-down&mdash;sit down!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will not.&rdquo; Faith&rsquo;s eyes flashed more passionately. She
-thought she was being made fun of&mdash;treated contemptuously. She would have
-enjoyed another explosion of rage, but this cut deep. &ldquo;I will not sit
-down in your house. I am going home. But I am glad I came back here and told
-you exactly what my opinion of you is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So am I&mdash;so am I,&rdquo; chuckled Norman. &ldquo;I like
-you&mdash;you&rsquo;re fine&mdash;you&rsquo;re great. Such roses&mdash;such
-vim! Did I call her cheese-face? Why, she never smelt a cheese. Sit down. If
-you&rsquo;d looked like that at the first, girl! So you&rsquo;ll write my name
-under the devil&rsquo;s picture, will you? But he&rsquo;s black, girl,
-he&rsquo;s black&mdash;and I&rsquo;m red. It won&rsquo;t do&mdash;it
-won&rsquo;t do! And you hope I&rsquo;ll have the Scotch fiddle, do you? Lord
-love you, girl, I had <i>it</i> when I was a boy. Don&rsquo;t wish it on me again. Sit
-down&mdash;sit in. We&rsquo;ll tak&rsquo; a cup o&rsquo; kindness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you,&rdquo; said Faith haughtily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, you will. Come, come now, I apologize, girl&mdash;I apologize.
-I made a fool of myself and I&rsquo;m sorry. Man can&rsquo;t say fairer. Forget
-and forgive. Shake hands, girl&mdash;shake hands. She won&rsquo;t&mdash;no, she
-won&rsquo;t! But she must! Look-a-here, girl, if you&rsquo;ll shake hands and
-break bread with me I&rsquo;ll pay what I used to to the salary and I&rsquo;ll
-go to church the first Sunday in every month and I&rsquo;ll make Kitty Alec
-hold her jaw. I&rsquo;m the only one in the clan can do it. Is it a bargain,
-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It seemed a bargain. Faith found herself shaking hands with the ogre and then
-sitting at his board. Her temper was over&mdash;Faith&rsquo;s tempers never
-lasted very long&mdash;but its excitement still sparkled in her eyes and
-crimsoned her cheeks. Norman Douglas looked at her admiringly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go, get some of your best preserves, Wilson,&rdquo; he ordered,
-&ldquo;and stop sulking, woman, stop sulking. What if we did have a quarrel,
-woman? A good squall clears the air and briskens things up. But no drizzling
-and fogging afterwards&mdash;no drizzling and fogging, woman. I can&rsquo;t
-stand that. Temper in a woman but no tears for me. Here, girl, is some messed
-up meat and potatoes for you. Begin on that. Wilson has some fancy name for it,
-but I call lit macanaccady. Anything I can&rsquo;t analyze in the eating line I
-call macanaccady and anything wet that puzzles me I call shallamagouslem.
-Wilson&rsquo;s tea is shallamagouslem. I swear she makes it out of burdocks.
-Don&rsquo;t take any of the ungodly black liquid&mdash;here&rsquo;s some milk
-for you. What did you say your name was?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No name that&mdash;no name that! I can&rsquo;t stomach such a name. Got
-any other?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t like the name, don&rsquo;t like it. There&rsquo;s no smeddum
-to it. Besides, it makes me think of my Aunt Jinny. She called her three girls
-Faith, Hope, and Charity. Faith didn&rsquo;t believe in anything&mdash;Hope was
-a born pessimist&mdash;and Charity was a miser. You ought to be called Red
-Rose&mdash;you look like one when you&rsquo;re mad. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> call you Red
-Rose. And you&rsquo;ve roped me into promising to go to church? But only once a
-month, remember&mdash;only once a month. Come now, girl, will you let me off? I
-used to pay a hundred to the salary every year and go to church. If I promise
-to pay two hundred a year will you let me off going to church? Come now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, sir,&rdquo; said Faith, dimpling roguishly. &ldquo;I want you to
-go to church, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, a bargain is a bargain. I reckon I can stand it twelve times a
-year. What a sensation it&rsquo;ll make the first Sunday I go! And old Susan
-Baker says I&rsquo;m going to hell, hey? Do you believe I&rsquo;ll go
-there&mdash;come, now, do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope not, sir,&rdquo; stammered Faith in some confusion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Why</i> do you hope not? Come, now, <i>why</i> do you hope not? Give us a reason,
-girl&mdash;give us a reason.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&mdash;it must be a very&mdash;uncomfortable place, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Uncomfortable? All depends on your taste in comfortable, girl. I&rsquo;d
-soon get tired of angels. Fancy old Susan in a halo, now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did fancy it, and it tickled her so much that she had to laugh. Norman
-eyed her approvingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See the fun of it, hey? Oh, I like you&mdash;you&rsquo;re great. About
-this church business, now&mdash;can your father preach?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a splendid preacher,&rdquo; said loyal Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is, hey? I&rsquo;ll see&mdash;I&rsquo;ll watch out for flaws.
-He&rsquo;d better be careful what he says before <i>me</i>. I&rsquo;ll catch
-him&mdash;I&rsquo;ll trip him up&mdash;I&rsquo;ll keep tabs on his arguments.
-I&rsquo;m bound to have some fun out of this church going business. Does he
-ever preach hell?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;o&mdash;o&mdash;I don&rsquo;t think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Too bad. I like sermons on that subject. You tell him that if he wants
-to keep me in good humour to preach a good rip-roaring sermon on hell once
-every six months&mdash;and the more brimstone the better. I like &lsquo;em
-smoking. And think of all the pleasure he&rsquo;d give the old maids, too.
-They&rsquo;d all keep looking at old Norman Douglas and thinking,
-&lsquo;That&rsquo;s for you, you old reprobate. That&rsquo;s what&rsquo;s in
-store for <i>you!</i>&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll give an extra ten dollars every time you get
-your father to preach on hell. Here&rsquo;s Wilson and the jam. Like that, hey?
-<i>It</i> isn&rsquo;t macanaccady. Taste!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith obediently swallowed the big spoonful Norman held out to her. Luckily it
-<i>was</i> good.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Best plum jam in the world,&rdquo; said Norman, filling a large saucer
-and plumping it down before her. &ldquo;Glad you like it. I&rsquo;ll give you a
-couple of jars to take home with you. There&rsquo;s nothing mean about
-me&mdash;never was. The devil can&rsquo;t catch me at <i>that</i> corner, anyhow. It
-wasn&rsquo;t my fault that Hester didn&rsquo;t have a new hat for ten years. It
-was her own&mdash;she pinched on hats to save money to give yellow fellows over
-in China. <i>I</i> never gave a cent to missions in my life&mdash;never will.
-Never you try to bamboozle me into that! A hundred a year to the salary and
-church once a month&mdash;but no spoiling good heathens to make poor
-Christians! Why, girl, they wouldn&rsquo;t be fit for heaven or
-hell&mdash;clean spoiled for either place&mdash;clean spoiled. Hey, Wilson,
-haven&rsquo;t you got a smile on yet? Beats all how you women can sulk!
-<i>I</i> never sulked in my life&mdash;it&rsquo;s just one big flash and crash
-with me and then&mdash;pouf&mdash;the squall&rsquo;s over and the sun is out
-and you could eat out of my hand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman insisted on driving Faith home after supper and he filled the buggy up
-with apples, cabbages, potatoes and pumpkins and jars of jam.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s a nice little tom-pussy out in the barn. I&rsquo;ll give
-you that too, if you&rsquo;d like it. Say the word,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you,&rdquo; said Faith decidedly. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t like
-cats, and besides, I have a rooster.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen to her. You can&rsquo;t cuddle a rooster as you can a kitten. Who
-ever heard of petting a rooster? Better take little Tom. I want to find a good
-home for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Aunt Martha has a cat and he would kill a strange kitten.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman yielded the point rather reluctantly. He gave Faith an exciting drive
-home, behind his wild two-year old, and when he had let her out at the kitchen
-door of the manse and dumped his cargo on the back veranda he drove away
-shouting,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s only once a month&mdash;only once a month, mind!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith went up to bed, feeling a little dizzy and breathless, as if she had just
-escaped from the grasp of a genial whirlwind. She was happy and thankful. No
-fear now that they would have to leave the Glen and the graveyard and Rainbow
-Valley. But she fell asleep troubled by a disagreeable subconsciousness that
-Dan Reese had called her pig-girl and that, having stumbled on such a congenial
-epithet, he would continue to call her so whenever opportunity offered.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap17"></a>CHAPTER XVII.<br />
-A DOUBLE VICTORY</h2>
-
-<p>
-Norman Douglas came to church the first Sunday in November and made all the
-sensation he desired. Mr. Meredith shook hands with him absently on the church
-steps and hoped dreamily that Mrs. Douglas was well.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She wasn&rsquo;t very well just before I buried her ten years ago, but I
-reckon she has better health now,&rdquo; boomed Norman, to the horror and
-amusement of every one except Mr. Meredith, who was absorbed in wondering if he
-had made the last head of his sermon as clear as he might have, and
-hadn&rsquo;t the least idea what Norman had said to him or he to Norman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman intercepted Faith at the gate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Kept my word, you see&mdash;kept my word, Red Rose. I&rsquo;m free now
-till the first Sunday in December. Fine sermon, girl&mdash;fine sermon. Your
-father has more in his head than he carries on his face. But he contradicted
-himself once&mdash;tell him he contradicted himself. And tell him I want that
-brimstone sermon in December. Great way to wind up the old year&mdash;with a
-taste of hell, you know. And what&rsquo;s the matter with a nice tasty
-discourse on heaven for New Year&rsquo;s? Though it wouldn&rsquo;t be half as
-interesting as hell, girl&mdash;not half. Only I&rsquo;d like to know what your
-father thinks about heaven&mdash;he <i>can</i> think&mdash;rarest thing in the
-world&mdash;a person who can think. But he <i>did</i> contradict himself. Ha, ha!
-Here&rsquo;s a question you might ask him sometime when he&rsquo;s awake, girl.
-&lsquo;Can God make a stone so big He couldn&rsquo;t lift it Himself?&rsquo;
-Don&rsquo;t forget now. I want to hear his opinion on it. I&rsquo;ve stumped
-many a minister with that, girl.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was glad to escape him and run home. Dan Reese, standing among the crowd
-of boys at the gate, looked at her and shaped his mouth into
-&ldquo;pig-girl,&rdquo; but dared not utter it aloud just there. Next day in
-school was a different matter. At noon recess Faith encountered Dan in the
-little spruce plantation behind the school and Dan shouted once more,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pig-girl! Pig-girl! <i>Rooster-girl!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter Blythe suddenly rose from a mossy cushion behind a little clump of firs
-where he had been reading. He was very pale, but his eyes blazed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You hold your tongue, Dan Reese!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, hello, Miss Walter,&rdquo; retorted Dan, not at all abashed. He
-vaulted airily to the top of the rail fence and chanted insultingly,
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;Cowardy, cowardy-custard<br />
-Stole a pot of mustard,<br />
-Cowardy, cowardy-custard!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a coincidence!&rdquo; said Walter scornfully, turning still
-whiter. He had only a very hazy idea what a coincidence was, but Dan had none
-at all and thought it must be something peculiarly opprobrious.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yah! Cowardy!&rdquo; he yelled gain. &ldquo;Your mother writes
-lies&mdash;lies&mdash;lies! And Faith Meredith is a
-pig-girl&mdash;a&mdash;pig-girl&mdash;a pig-girl! And she&rsquo;s a
-rooster-girl&mdash;a rooster-girl&mdash;a rooster-girl! Yah!
-Cowardy&mdash;cowardy&mdash;cust&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dan got no further. Walter had hurled himself across the intervening space and
-knocked Dan off the fence backward with one well-directed blow. Dan&rsquo;s
-sudden inglorious sprawl was greeted with a burst of laughter and a clapping of
-hands from Faith. Dan sprang up, purple with rage, and began to climb the
-fence. But just then the school-bell rang and Dan knew what happened to boys
-who were late during Mr. Hazard&rsquo;s regime.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll fight this out,&rdquo; he howled. &ldquo;Cowardy!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any time you like,&rdquo; said Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, Walter,&rdquo; protested Faith. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t fight
-him. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t mind what he says&mdash;I wouldn&rsquo;t condescend
-to mind the like of <i>him</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He insulted you and he insulted my mother,&rdquo; said Walter, with the
-same deadly calm. &ldquo;Tonight after school, Dan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got to go right home from school to pick taters after the
-harrows, dad says,&rdquo; answered Dan sulkily. &ldquo;But to-morrow
-night&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right&mdash;here to-morrow night,&rdquo; agreed Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;ll smash your sissy-face for you,&rdquo; promised Dan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shuddered&mdash;not so much from fear of the threat as from repulsion
-over the ugliness and vulgarity of it. But he held his head high and marched
-into school. Faith followed in a conflict of emotions. She hated to think of
-Walter fighting that little sneak, but oh, he had been splendid! And he was
-going to fight for <i>her</i>&mdash;Faith Meredith&mdash;to punish her insulter! Of
-course he would win&mdash;such eyes spelled victory.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s confidence in her champion had dimmed a little by evening,
-however. Walter had seemed so very quiet and dull the rest of the day in
-school.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If it were only Jem,&rdquo; she sighed to Una, as they sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone in the graveyard. &ldquo;<i>He</i> is such a
-fighter&mdash;he could finish Dan off in no time. But Walter doesn&rsquo;t know
-much about fighting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so afraid he&rsquo;ll be hurt,&rdquo; sighed Una, who hated
-fighting and couldn&rsquo;t understand the subtle, secret exultation she
-divined in Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He oughtn&rsquo;t to be,&rdquo; said Faith uncomfortably.
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;s every bit as big as Dan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But Dan&rsquo;s so much older,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;Why, he&rsquo;s
-nearly a year older.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dan hasn&rsquo;t done much fighting when you come to count up,&rdquo;
-said Faith. &ldquo;I believe he&rsquo;s really a coward. He didn&rsquo;t think
-Walter would fight, or he wouldn&rsquo;t have called names before him. Oh, if
-you could just have seen Walter&rsquo;s face when he looked at him, Una! It
-made me shiver&mdash;with a nice shiver. He looked just like Sir Galahad in
-that poem father read us on Saturday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate the thought of them fighting and I wish it could be
-stopped,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it&rsquo;s got to go on now,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a
-matter of honour. Don&rsquo;t you <i>dare</i> tell anyone, Una. If you do I&rsquo;ll
-never tell you secrets again!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t tell,&rdquo; agreed Una. &ldquo;But I won&rsquo;t stay
-to-morrow to watch the fight. I&rsquo;m coming right home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, all right. <i>I</i> have to be there&mdash;it would be mean not to,
-when Walter is fighting for me. I&rsquo;m going to tie my colours on his
-arm&mdash;that&rsquo;s the thing to do when he&rsquo;s my knight. How lucky
-Mrs. Blythe gave me that pretty blue hair-ribbon for my birthday! I&rsquo;ve
-only worn it twice so it will be almost new. But I wish I was sure Walter would
-win. It will be so&mdash;so <i>humiliating</i> if he doesn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith would have been yet more dubious if she could have seen her champion just
-then. Walter had gone home from school with all his righteous anger at a low
-ebb and a very nasty feeling in its place. He had to fight Dan Reese the next
-night&mdash;and he didn&rsquo;t want to&mdash;he hated the thought of it. And
-he kept thinking of it all the time. Not for a minute could he get away from
-the thought. Would it hurt much? He was terribly afraid that it would hurt. And
-would he be defeated and shamed?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He could not eat any supper worth speaking of. Susan had made a big batch of
-his favourite monkey-faces, but he could choke only one down. Jem ate four.
-Walter wondered how he could. How could <i>anybody</i> eat? And how could they all
-talk gaily as they were doing? There was mother, with her shining eyes and pink
-cheeks. <i>She</i> didn&rsquo;t know her son had to fight next day. Would she be so
-gay if she knew, Walter wondered darkly. Jem had taken Susan&rsquo;s picture
-with his new camera and the result was passed around the table and Susan was
-terribly indignant over it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am no beauty, Mrs. Dr. dear, and well I know it, and have always known
-it,&rdquo; she said in an aggrieved tone, &ldquo;but that I am as ugly as that
-picture makes me out I will never, no, never believe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem laughed over this and Anne laughed again with him. Walter couldn&rsquo;t
-endure it. He got up and fled to his room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That child has got something on his mind, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said
-Susan. &ldquo;He has et next to nothing. Do you suppose he is plotting another
-poem?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Poor Walter was very far removed in spirit from the starry realms of poesy just
-then. He propped his elbow on his open window-sill and leaned his head drearily
-on his hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come on down to the shore, Walter,&rdquo; cried Jem, busting in.
-&ldquo;The boys are going to burn the sand-hill grass to-night. Father says we
-can go. Come on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At any other time Walter would have been delighted. He gloried in the burning
-of the sand-hill grass. But now he flatly refused to go, and no arguments or
-entreaties could move him. Disappointed Jem, who did not care for the long dark
-walk to Four Winds Point alone, retreated to his museum in the garret and
-buried himself in a book. He soon forgot his disappointment, revelling with the
-heroes of old romance, and pausing occasionally to picture himself a famous
-general, leading his troops to victory on some great battlefield.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter sat at his window until bedtime. Di crept in, hoping to be told what was
-wrong, but Walter could not talk of it, even to Di. Talking of it seemed to
-give it a reality from which he shrank. It was torture enough to think of it.
-The crisp, withered leaves rustled on the maple trees outside his window. The
-glow of rose and flame had died out of the hollow, silvery sky, and the full
-moon was rising gloriously over Rainbow Valley. Afar off, a ruddy woodfire was
-painting a page of glory on the horizon beyond the hills. It was a sharp, clear
-evening when far-away sounds were heard distinctly. A fox was barking across
-the pond; an engine was puffing down at the Glen station; a blue-jay was
-screaming madly in the maple grove; there was laughter over on the manse lawn.
-How could people laugh? How could foxes and blue-jays and engines behave as if
-nothing were going to happen on the morrow?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wish it was over,&rdquo; groaned Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He slept very little that night and had hard work choking down his porridge in
-the morning. Susan <i>was</i> rather lavish in her platefuls. Mr. Hazard found him an
-unsatisfactory pupil that day. Faith Meredith&rsquo;s wits seemed to be
-wool-gathering, too. Dan Reese kept drawing surreptitious pictures of girls,
-with pig or rooster heads, on his slate and holding them up for all to see. The
-news of the coming battle had leaked out and most of the boys and many of the
-girls were in the spruce plantation when Dan and Walter sought it after school.
-Una had gone home, but Faith was there, having tied her blue ribbon around
-Walter&rsquo;s arm. Walter was thankful that neither Jem nor Di nor Nan were
-among the crowd of spectators. Somehow they had not heard of what was in the
-wind and had gone home, too. Walter faced Dan quite undauntedly now. At the
-last moment all his fear had vanished, but he still felt disgust at the idea of
-fighting. Dan, it was noted, was really paler under his freckles than Walter
-was. One of the older boys gave the word and Dan struck Walter in the face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter reeled a little. The pain of the blow tingled through all his sensitive
-frame for a moment. Then he felt pain no longer. Something, such as he had
-never experienced before, seemed to roll over him like a flood. His face
-flushed crimson, his eyes burned like flame. The scholars of Glen St. Mary
-school had never dreamed that &ldquo;Miss Walter&rdquo; could look like that.
-He hurled himself forward and closed with Dan like a young wildcat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There were no particular rules in the fights of the Glen school boys. It was
-catch-as-catch can, and get your blows in anyhow. Walter fought with a savage
-fury and a joy in the struggle against which Dan could not hold his ground. It
-was all over very speedily. Walter had no clear consciousness of what he was
-doing until suddenly the red mist cleared from his sight and he found himself
-kneeling on the body of the prostrate Dan whose nose&mdash;oh,
-horror!&mdash;was spouting blood.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you had enough?&rdquo; demanded Walter through his clenched teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dan sulkily admitted that he had.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My mother doesn&rsquo;t write lies?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith Meredith isn&rsquo;t a pig-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor a rooster-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;m not a coward?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter had intended to ask, &ldquo;And you are a liar?&rdquo; but pity
-intervened and he did not humiliate Dan further. Besides, that blood was so
-horrible.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can go, then,&rdquo; he said contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a loud clapping from the boys who were perched on the rail fence, but
-some of the girls were crying. They were frightened. They had seen schoolboy
-fights before, but nothing like Walter as he had grappled with Dan. There had
-been something terrifying about him. They thought he would kill Dan. Now that
-all was over they sobbed hysterically&mdash;except Faith, who still stood tense
-and crimson cheeked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter did not stay for any conqueror&rsquo;s meed. He sprang over the fence
-and rushed down the spruce hill to Rainbow Valley. He felt none of the
-victor&rsquo;s joy, but he felt a certain calm satisfaction in duty done and
-honour avenged&mdash;mingled with a sickish qualm when he thought of
-Dan&rsquo;s gory nose. It had been so ugly, and Walter hated ugliness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Also, he began to realize that he himself was somewhat sore and battered up.
-His lip was cut and swollen and one eye felt very strange. In Rainbow Valley he
-encountered Mr. Meredith, who was coming home from an afternoon call on the
-Miss Wests. That reverend gentleman looked gravely at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems to me that you have been fighting, Walter?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Walter, expecting a scolding.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was it about?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dan Reese said my mother wrote lies and that that Faith was a
-pig-girl,&rdquo; answered Walter bluntly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;h! Then you were certainly justified, Walter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think it&rsquo;s right to fight, sir?&rdquo; asked Walter
-curiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not always&mdash;and not often&mdash;but sometimes&mdash;yes,
-sometimes,&rdquo; said John Meredith. &ldquo;When womenkind are insulted for
-instance&mdash;as in your case. My motto, Walter, is, don&rsquo;t fight till
-you&rsquo;re sure you ought to, and <i>then</i> put every ounce of you into it. In
-spite of sundry discolorations I infer that you came off best.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. I made him take it all back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good&mdash;very good, indeed. I didn&rsquo;t think you were such a
-fighter, Walter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never fought before&mdash;and I didn&rsquo;t want to right up to the
-last&mdash;and then,&rdquo; said Walter, determined to make a clean breast of
-it, &ldquo;I liked it while I was at it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. John&rsquo;s eyes twinkled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You were&mdash;a little frightened&mdash;at first?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was a whole lot frightened,&rdquo; said honest Walter. &ldquo;But
-I&rsquo;m not going to be frightened any more, sir. Being frightened of things
-is worse than the things themselves. I&rsquo;m going to ask father to take me
-over to Lowbridge to-morrow to get my tooth out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Right again. &lsquo;Fear is more pain than is the pain it fears.&rsquo;
-Do you know who wrote that, Walter? It was Shakespeare. Was there any feeling
-or emotion or experience of the human heart that that wonderful man did not
-know? When you go home tell your mother I am proud of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter did not tell her that, however; but he told her all the rest, and she
-sympathized with him and told him she was glad he had stood up for her and
-Faith, and she anointed his sore spots and rubbed cologne on his aching head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are all mothers as nice as you?&rdquo; asked Walter, hugging her.
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;re <i>worth</i> standing up for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia and Susan were in the living room when Anne came downstairs, and
-listened to the story with much enjoyment. Susan in particular was highly
-gratified.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am real glad to hear he has had a good fight, Mrs. Dr. dear. Perhaps
-it may knock that poetry nonsense out of him. And I never, no, never could bear
-that little viper of a Dan Reese. Will you not sit nearer to the fire, Mrs.
-Marshall Elliott? These November evenings are very chilly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, Susan, I&rsquo;m not cold. I called at the manse before I
-came here and got quite warm&mdash;though I had to go to the kitchen to do it,
-for there was no fire anywhere else. The kitchen looked as if it had been
-stirred up with a stick, believe <i>me</i>. Mr. Meredith wasn&rsquo;t home. I
-couldn&rsquo;t find out where he was, but I have an idea that he was up at the
-Wests&rsquo;. Do you know, Anne dearie, they say he has been going there
-frequently all the fall and people are beginning to think he is going to see
-Rosemary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He would get a very charming wife if he married Rosemary,&rdquo; said
-Anne, piling driftwood on the fire. &ldquo;She is one of the most delightful
-girls I&rsquo;ve ever known&mdash;truly one of the race of Joseph.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ye&mdash;s&mdash;only she is an Episcopalian,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-doubtfully. &ldquo;Of course, that is better than if she was a
-Methodist&mdash;but I do think Mr. Meredith could find a good enough wife in
-his own denomination. However, very likely there is nothing in it. It&rsquo;s
-only a month ago that I said to him, &lsquo;You ought to marry again, Mr.
-Meredith.&rsquo; He looked as shocked as if I had suggested something improper.
-&lsquo;My wife is in her grave, Mrs. Elliott,&rsquo; he said, in that gentle,
-saintly way of his. &lsquo;I suppose so,&rsquo; I said, &lsquo;or I
-wouldn&rsquo;t be advising you to marry again.&rsquo; Then he looked more
-shocked than ever. So I doubt if there is much in this Rosemary story. If a
-single minister calls twice at a house where there is a single woman all the
-gossips have it he is courting her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems to me&mdash;if I may presume to say so&mdash;that Mr. Meredith
-is too shy to go courting a second wife,&rdquo; said Susan solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> shy, believe <i>me</i>,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;Absent-minded,&mdash;yes&mdash;but shy, no. And for all he is so
-abstracted and dreamy he has a very good opinion of himself, man-like, and when
-he is really awake he wouldn&rsquo;t think it much of a chore to ask any woman
-to have him. No, the trouble is, he&rsquo;s deluding himself into believing
-that his heart is buried, while all the time it&rsquo;s beating away inside of
-him just like anybody else&rsquo;s. He may have a notion of Rosemary West and
-he may not. If he has, we must make the best of it. She is a sweet girl and a
-fine housekeeper, and would make a good mother for those poor, neglected
-children. And,&rdquo; concluded Miss Cornelia resignedly, &ldquo;my own
-grandmother was an Episcopalian.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap18"></a>CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
-MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance, whom Mrs. Elliott had sent up to the manse on an errand, came
-tripping down Rainbow Valley on her way to Ingleside where she was to spend the
-afternoon with Nan and Di as a Saturday treat. Nan and Di had been picking
-spruce gum with Faith and Una in the manse woods and the four of them were now
-sitting on a fallen pine by the brook, all, it must be admitted, chewing rather
-vigorously. The Ingleside twins were not allowed to chew spruce gum anywhere
-but in the seclusion of Rainbow Valley, but Faith and Una were unrestricted by
-such rules of etiquette and cheerfully chewed it everywhere, at home and
-abroad, to the very proper horror of the Glen. Faith had been chewing it in
-church one day; but Jerry had realized the enormity of <i>that</i>, and had given her
-such an older-brotherly scolding that she never did it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was so hungry I just felt as if I had to chew something,&rdquo; she
-protested. &ldquo;You know well enough what breakfast was like, Jerry Meredith.
-I <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i> eat scorched porridge and my stomach just felt so queer and
-empty. The gum helped a lot&mdash;and I didn&rsquo;t chew <i>very</i> hard. I
-didn&rsquo;t make any noise and I never cracked the gum once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mustn&rsquo;t chew gum in church, anyhow,&rdquo; insisted Jerry.
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let me catch you at it again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You chewed yourself in prayer-meeting last week,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>that&rsquo;s</i> different,&rdquo; said Jerry loftily. &ldquo;Prayer-meeting
-isn&rsquo;t on Sunday. Besides, I sat away at the back in a dark seat and
-nobody saw me. You were sitting right up front where every one saw you. And I
-took the gum out of my mouth for the last hymn and stuck it on the back of the
-pew right up in front where every one saw you. Then I came away and forgot it.
-I went back to get it next morning, but it was gone. I suppose Rod Warren
-swiped it. And it was a dandy chew.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance walked down the Valley with her head held high. She had on a new
-blue velvet cap with a scarlet rosette in it, a coat of navy blue cloth and a
-little squirrel-fur muff. She was very conscious of her new clothes and very
-well pleased with herself. Her hair was elaborately crimped, her face was quite
-plump, her cheeks rosy, her white eyes shining. She did not look much like the
-forlorn and ragged waif the Merediths had found in the old Taylor barn. Una
-tried not to feel envious. Here was Mary with a new velvet cap, but she and
-Faith had to wear their shabby old gray tams again this winter. Nobody ever
-thought of getting them new ones and they were afraid to ask their father for
-them for fear that he might be short of money and then he would feel badly.
-Mary had told them once that ministers were always short of money, and found it
-&ldquo;awful hard&rdquo; to make ends meet. Since then Faith and Una would have
-gone in rags rather than ask their father for anything if they could help it.
-They did not worry a great deal over their shabbiness; but it was rather trying
-to see Mary Vance coming out in such style and putting on such airs about it,
-too. The new squirrel muff was really the last straw. Neither Faith nor Una had
-ever had a muff, counting themselves lucky if they could compass mittens
-without holes in them. Aunt Martha could not see to darn holes and though Una
-tried to, she made sad cobbling. Somehow, they could not make their greeting of
-Mary very cordial. But Mary did not mind or notice that; she was not overly
-sensitive. She vaulted lightly to a seat on the pine tree, and laid the
-offending muff on a bough. Una saw that it was lined with shirred red satin and
-had red tassels. She looked down at her own rather purple, chapped, little
-hands and wondered if she would ever, <i>ever</i> be able to put them into a muff like
-that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give us a chew,&rdquo; said Mary companionably. Nan, Di and Faith all
-produced an amber-hued knot or two from their pockets and passed them to Mary.
-Una sat very still. She had four lovely big knots in the pocket of her tight,
-thread-bare little jacket, but she wasn&rsquo;t going to give one of them to
-Mary Vance&mdash;not one Let Mary pick her own gum! People with squirrel muffs
-needn&rsquo;t expect to get everything in the world.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great day, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; said Mary, swinging her legs, the
-better, perhaps, to display new boots with very smart cloth tops. Una tucked
-<i>her</i> feet under her. There was a hole in the toe of one of her boots and both
-laces were much knotted. But they were the best she had. Oh, this Mary Vance!
-Why hadn&rsquo;t they left her in the old barn?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una never felt badly because the Ingleside twins were better dressed than she
-and Faith were. <i>They</i> wore their pretty clothes with careless grace and never
-seemed to think about them at all. Somehow, they did not make other people feel
-shabby. But when Mary Vance was dressed up she seemed fairly to exude
-clothes&mdash;to walk in an atmosphere of clothes&mdash;to make everybody else
-feel and think clothes. Una, as she sat there in the honey-tinted sunshine of
-the gracious December afternoon, was acutely and miserably conscious of
-everything she had on&mdash;the faded tam, which was yet her best, the skimpy
-jacket she had worn for three winters, the holes in her skirt and her boots,
-the shivering insufficiency of her poor little undergarments. Of course, Mary
-was going out for a visit and she was not. But even if she had been she had
-nothing better to put on and in this lay the sting.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, this is great gum. Listen to me cracking it. There ain&rsquo;t any
-gum spruces down at Four Winds,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Sometimes I just
-hanker after a chew. Mrs. Elliott won&rsquo;t let me chew gum if she sees me.
-She says it ain&rsquo;t lady-like. This lady-business puzzles me. I can&rsquo;t
-get on to all its kinks. Say, Una, what&rsquo;s the matter with you? Cat got
-your tongue?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Una, who could not drag her fascinated eyes from that
-squirrel muff. Mary leaned past her, picked it up and thrust it into
-Una&rsquo;s hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stick your paws in that for a while,&rdquo; she ordered. &ldquo;They
-look sorter pinched. Ain&rsquo;t that a dandy muff? Mrs. Elliott give it to me
-last week for a birthday present. I&rsquo;m to get the collar at Christmas. I
-heard her telling Mr. Elliott that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott is very good to you,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You bet she is. And <i>I&rsquo;m</i> good to her, too,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;I work like a nigger to make it easy for her and have everything just as
-she likes it. We was made for each other. &lsquo;Tisn&rsquo;t every one could
-get along with her as well as I do. She&rsquo;s pizen neat, but so am I, and so
-we agree fine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I told you she would never whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you did. She&rsquo;s never tried to lay a finger on me and I
-ain&rsquo;t never told a lie to her&mdash;not one, true&rsquo;s you live. She
-combs me down with her tongue sometimes though, but that just slips off <i>me</i> like
-water off a duck&rsquo;s back. Say, Una, why didn&rsquo;t you hang on to the
-muff?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una had put it back on the bough.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My hands aren&rsquo;t cold, thank you,&rdquo; she said stiffly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if you&rsquo;re satisfied, <i>I</i> am. Say, old Kitty Alec has
-come back to church as meek as Moses and nobody knows why. But everybody is
-saying it was Faith brought Norman Douglas out. His housekeeper says you went
-there and gave him an awful tongue-lashing. Did you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I went and asked him to come to church,&rdquo; said Faith uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fancy your spunk!&rdquo; said Mary admiringly. &ldquo;<i>I</i>
-wouldn&rsquo;t have dared do that and I&rsquo;m not so slow. Mrs. Wilson says
-the two of you jawed something scandalous, but you come off best and then he
-just turned round and like to eat you up. Say, is your father going to preach
-here to-morrow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. He&rsquo;s going to exchange with Mr. Perry from Charlottetown.
-Father went to town this morning and Mr. Perry is coming out to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>thought</i> there was something in the wind, though old Martha
-wouldn&rsquo;t give me any satisfaction. But I felt sure she wouldn&rsquo;t
-have been killing that rooster for nothing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What rooster? What do you mean?&rdquo; cried Faith, turning pale.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t know what rooster. I didn&rsquo;t see it. When she
-took the butter Mrs. Elliott sent up she said she&rsquo;d been out to the barn
-killing a rooster for dinner tomorrow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith sprang down from the pine.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s Adam&mdash;we have no other rooster&mdash;she has killed
-Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, don&rsquo;t fly off the handle. Martha said the butcher at the Glen
-had no meat this week and she had to have something and the hens were all
-laying and too poor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If she has killed Adam&mdash;&rdquo; Faith began to run up the hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary shrugged her shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;ll go crazy now. She was so fond of that Adam. He ought to
-have been in the pot long ago&mdash;he&rsquo;ll be as tough as sole leather.
-But <i>I</i> wouldn&rsquo;t like to be in Martha&rsquo;s shoes. Faith&rsquo;s
-just white with rage; Una, you&rsquo;d better go after her and try to peacify
-her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had gone a few steps with the Blythe girls when Una suddenly turned and
-ran after her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here&rsquo;s some gum for you, Mary,&rdquo; she said, with a little
-repentant catch in her voice, thrusting all her four knots into Mary&rsquo;s
-hands, &ldquo;and I&rsquo;m glad you have such a pretty muff.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, thanks,&rdquo; said Mary, rather taken by surprise. To the Blythe
-girls, after Una had gone, she said, &ldquo;Ain&rsquo;t she a queer little
-mite? But I&rsquo;ve always said she had a good heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap19"></a>CHAPTER XIX.<br />
-POOR ADAM!</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Una got home Faith was lying face downwards on her bed, utterly refusing
-to be comforted. Aunt Martha had killed Adam. He was reposing on a platter in
-the pantry that very minute, trussed and dressed, encircled by his liver and
-heart and gizzard. Aunt Martha heeded Faith&rsquo;s passion of grief and anger
-not a whit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had to have something for the strange minister&rsquo;s dinner,&rdquo;
-she said. &ldquo;You&rsquo;re too big a girl to make such a fuss over an old
-rooster. You knew he&rsquo;d have to be killed sometime.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell father when he comes home what you&rsquo;ve done,&rdquo;
-sobbed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you go bothering your poor father. He has troubles enough.
-And <i>I&rsquo;m</i> housekeeper here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Adam was <i>mine</i>&mdash;Mrs. Johnson gave him to me. You had no business to
-touch him,&rdquo; stormed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you get sassy now. The rooster&rsquo;s killed and
-there&rsquo;s an end of it. I ain&rsquo;t going to set no strange minister down
-to a dinner of cold b&rsquo;iled mutton. I was brought up to know better than
-that, if I have come down in the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith would not go down to supper that night and she would not go to church the
-next morning. But at dinner time she went to the table, her eyes swollen with
-crying, her face sullen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. James Perry was a sleek, rubicund man, with a bristling white
-moustache, bushy white eyebrows, and a shining bald head. He was certainly not
-handsome and he was a very tiresome, pompous sort of person. But if he had
-looked like the Archangel Michael and talked with the tongues of men and angels
-Faith would still have utterly detested him. He carved Adam up dexterously,
-showing off his plump white hands and very handsome diamond ring. Also, he made
-jovial remarks all through the performance. Jerry and Carl giggled, and even
-Una smiled wanly, because she thought politeness demanded it. But Faith only
-scowled darkly. The Rev. James thought her manners shockingly bad. Once, when
-he was delivering himself of an unctuous remark to Jerry, Faith broke in rudely
-with a flat contradiction. The Rev. James drew his bushy eyebrows together at
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Little girls should not interrupt,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and they
-should not contradict people who know far more than they do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This put Faith in a worse temper than ever. To be called &ldquo;little
-girl&rdquo; as if she were no bigger than chubby Rilla Blythe over at
-Ingleside! It was insufferable. And how that abominable Mr. Perry did eat! He
-even picked poor Adam&rsquo;s bones. Neither Faith nor Una would touch a
-mouthful, and looked upon the boys as little better than cannibals. Faith felt
-that if that awful repast did not soon come to an end she would wind it up by
-throwing something at Mr. Perry&rsquo;s gleaming head. Fortunately, Mr. Perry
-found Aunt Martha&rsquo;s leathery apple pie too much even for his powers of
-mastication and the meal came to an end, after a long grace in which Mr. Perry
-offered up devout thanks for the food which a kind and beneficent Providence
-had provided for sustenance and temperate pleasure.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God hadn&rsquo;t a single thing to do with providing Adam for
-you,&rdquo; muttered Faith rebelliously under her breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boys gladly made their escape to outdoors, Una went to help Aunt Martha
-with the dishes&mdash;though that rather grumpy old dame never welcomed her
-timid assistance&mdash;and Faith betook herself to the study where a cheerful
-wood fire was burning in the grate. She thought she would thereby escape from
-the hated Mr. Perry, who had announced his intention of taking a nap in his
-room during the afternoon. But scarcely had Faith settled herself in a corner,
-with a book, when he walked in and, standing before the fire, proceeded to
-survey the disorderly study with an air of disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You father&rsquo;s books seem to be in somewhat deplorable confusion, my
-little girl,&rdquo; he said severely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith darkled in her corner and said not a word. She would <i>not</i> talk to
-this&mdash;this creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You should try to put them in order,&rdquo; Mr. Perry went on, playing
-with his handsome watch chain and smiling patronizingly on Faith. &ldquo;You
-are quite old enough to attend to such duties. <i>My</i> little daughter at home is
-only ten and she is already an excellent little housekeeper and the greatest
-help and comfort to her mother. She is a very sweet child. I wish you had the
-privilege of her acquaintance. She could help you in many ways. Of course, you
-have not had the inestimable privilege of a good mother&rsquo;s care and
-training. A sad lack&mdash;a very sad lack. I have spoken more than once to
-your father in this connection and pointed out his duty to him faithfully, but
-so far with no effect. I trust he may awaken to a realization of his
-responsibility before it is too late. In the meantime, it is your duty and
-privilege to endeavour to take your sainted mother&rsquo;s place. You might
-exercise a great influence over your brothers and your little sister&mdash;you
-might be a true mother to them. I fear that you do not think of these things as
-you should. My dear child, allow me to open your eyes in regard to them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Perry&rsquo;s oily, complacent voice trickled on. He was in his element.
-Nothing suited him better than to lay down the law, patronize and exhort. He
-had no idea of stopping, and he did not stop. He stood before the fire, his
-feet planted firmly on the rug, and poured out a flood of pompous platitudes.
-Faith heard not a word. She was really not listening to him at all. But she was
-watching his long black coat-tails with impish delight growing in her brown
-eyes. Mr. Perry was standing <i>very</i> near the fire. His coat-tails began to
-scorch&mdash;his coat-tails began to smoke. He still prosed on, wrapped up in
-his own eloquence. The coat-tails smoked worse. A tiny spark flew up from the
-burning wood and alighted in the middle of one. It clung and caught and spread
-into a smouldering flame. Faith could restrain herself no longer and broke into
-a stifled giggle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Perry stopped short, angered over this impertinence. Suddenly he became
-conscious that a reek of burning cloth filled the room. He whirled round and
-saw nothing. Then he clapped his hands to his coat-tails and brought them
-around in front of him. There was already quite a hole in one of them&mdash;and
-this was his new suit. Faith shook with helpless laughter over his pose and
-expression.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you see my coat-tails burning?&rdquo; he demanded angrily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Faith demurely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why didn&rsquo;t you tell me?&rdquo; he demanded, glaring at her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said it wasn&rsquo;t good manners to interrupt, sir,&rdquo; said
-Faith, more demurely still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If&mdash;if I was your father, I would give you a spanking that you
-would remember all your life, Miss,&rdquo; said a very angry reverend
-gentleman, as he stalked out of the study. The coat of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s
-second best suit would not fit Mr. Perry, so he had to go to the evening
-service with his singed coat-tail. But he did not walk up the aisle with his
-usual consciousness of the honour he was conferring on the building. He never
-would agree to an exchange of pulpits with Mr. Meredith again, and he was
-barely civil to the latter when they met for a few minutes at the station the
-next morning. But Faith felt a certain gloomy satisfaction. Adam was partially
-avenged.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap20"></a>CHAPTER XX.<br />
-FAITH MAKES A FRIEND</h2>
-
-<p>
-Next day in school was a hard one for Faith. Mary Vance had told the tale of
-Adam, and all the scholars, except the Blythes, thought it quite a joke. The
-girls told Faith, between giggles, that it was too bad, and the boys wrote
-sardonic notes of condolence to her. Poor Faith went home from school feeling
-her very soul raw and smarting within her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going over to Ingleside to have a talk with Mrs.
-Blythe,&rdquo; she sobbed. &ldquo;<i>She</i> won&rsquo;t laugh at me, as everybody
-else does. I&rsquo;ve just <i>got</i> to talk to somebody who understands how bad I
-feel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She ran down through Rainbow Valley. Enchantment had been at work the night
-before. A light snow had fallen and the powdered firs were dreaming of a spring
-to come and a joy to be. The long hill beyond was richly purple with leafless
-beeches. The rosy light of sunset lay over the world like a pink kiss. Of all
-the airy, fairy places, full of weird, elfin grace, Rainbow Valley that winter
-evening was the most beautiful. But all its dreamlike loveliness was lost on
-poor, sore-hearted little Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By the brook she came suddenly upon Rosemary West, who was sitting on the old
-pine tree. She was on her way home from Ingleside, where she had been giving
-the girls their music lesson. She had been lingering in Rainbow Valley quite a
-little time, looking across its white beauty and roaming some by-ways of dream.
-Judging from the expression of her face, her thoughts were pleasant ones.
-Perhaps the faint, occasional tinkle from the bells on the Tree Lovers brought
-the little lurking smile to her lips. Or perhaps it was occasioned by the
-consciousness that John Meredith seldom failed to spend Monday evening in the
-gray house on the white wind-swept hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Into Rosemary&rsquo;s dreams burst Faith Meredith full of rebellious
-bitterness. Faith stopped abruptly when she saw Miss West. She did not know her
-very well&mdash;just well enough to speak to when they met. And she did not
-want to see any one just then&mdash;except Mrs. Blythe. She knew her eyes and
-nose were red and swollen and she hated to have a stranger know she had been
-crying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good evening, Miss West,&rdquo; she said uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, Faith?&rdquo; asked Rosemary gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; said Faith rather shortly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Rosemary smiled. &ldquo;You mean nothing that you can tell to
-outsiders, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith looked at Miss West with sudden interest. Here was a person who
-understood things. And how pretty she was! How golden her hair was under her
-plumy hat! How pink her cheeks were over her velvet coat! How blue and
-companionable her eyes were! Faith felt that Miss West could be a lovely
-friend&mdash;if only she were a friend instead of a stranger!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I&rsquo;m going up to tell Mrs. Blythe,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;She always understands&mdash;she never laughs at us. I always talk
-things over with her. It helps.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear girlie, I&rsquo;m sorry to have to tell you that Mrs. Blythe
-isn&rsquo;t home,&rdquo; said Miss West, sympathetically. &ldquo;She went to
-Avonlea to-day and isn&rsquo;t coming back till the last of the week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s lip quivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I might as well go home again,&rdquo; she said miserably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so&mdash;unless you think you could bring yourself to talk it
-over with me instead,&rdquo; said Miss Rosemary gently. &ldquo;It <i>is</i> such a
-help to talk things over. <i>I</i> know. I don&rsquo;t suppose I can be as good
-at understanding as Mrs. Blythe&mdash;but I promise you that I won&rsquo;t
-laugh.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You wouldn&rsquo;t laugh outside,&rdquo; hesitated Faith. &ldquo;But you
-might&mdash;inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I wouldn&rsquo;t laugh inside, either. Why should I? Something has
-hurt you&mdash;it never amuses me to see anybody hurt, no matter what hurts
-them. If you feel that you&rsquo;d like to tell me what has hurt you I&rsquo;ll
-be glad to listen. But if you think you&rsquo;d rather not&mdash;that&rsquo;s
-all right, too, dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith took another long, earnest look into Miss West&rsquo;s eyes. They were
-very serious&mdash;there was no laughter in them, not even far, far back. With
-a little sigh she sat down on the old pine beside her new friend and told her
-all about Adam and his cruel fate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary did not laugh or feel like laughing. She understood and
-sympathized&mdash;really, she was almost as good as Mrs. Blythe&mdash;yes,
-quite as good.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Perry is a minister, but he should have been a <i>butcher</i>,&rdquo; said
-Faith bitterly. &ldquo;He is so fond of carving things up. He <i>enjoyed</i> cutting
-poor Adam to pieces. He just sliced into him as if he were any common
-rooster.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Between you and me, Faith, <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t like Mr. Perry very well
-myself,&rdquo; said Rosemary, laughing a little&mdash;but at Mr. Perry, not at
-Adam, as Faith clearly understood. &ldquo;I never did like him. I went to
-school with him&mdash;he was a Glen boy, you know&mdash;and he was a most
-detestable little prig even then. Oh, how we girls used to hate holding his
-fat, clammy hands in the ring-around games. But we must remember, dear, that he
-didn&rsquo;t know that Adam had been a pet of yours. He thought he <i>was</i> just a
-common rooster. We must be just, even when we are terribly hurt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so,&rdquo; admitted Faith. &ldquo;But why does everybody seem
-to think it funny that I should have loved Adam so much, Miss West? If it had
-been a horrid old cat nobody would have thought it queer. When Lottie
-Warren&rsquo;s kitten had its legs cut off by the binder everybody was sorry
-for her. She cried two days in school and nobody laughed at her, not even Dan
-Reese. And all her chums went to the kitten&rsquo;s funeral and helped her bury
-it&mdash;only they couldn&rsquo;t bury its poor little paws with it, because
-they couldn&rsquo;t find them. It was a horrid thing to have happen, of course,
-but I don&rsquo;t think it was as dreadful as seeing your pet <i>eaten up</i>. Yet
-everybody laughs at <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it is because the name &lsquo;rooster&rsquo; seems rather a
-funny one,&rdquo; said Rosemary gravely. &ldquo;There <i>is</i> something in it that
-is comical. Now, &lsquo;chicken&rsquo; is different. It doesn&rsquo;t sound so
-funny to talk of loving a chicken.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Adam was the dearest little chicken, Miss West. He was just a little
-golden ball. He would run up to me and peck out of my hand. And he was handsome
-when he grew up, too&mdash;white as snow, with such a beautiful curving white
-tail, though Mary Vance said it was too short. He knew his name and always came
-when I called him&mdash;he was a very intelligent rooster. And Aunt Martha had
-no right to kill him. He was mine. It wasn&rsquo;t fair, was it, Miss
-West?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, it wasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Rosemary decidedly. &ldquo;Not a bit
-fair. I remember I had a pet hen when I was a little girl. She was such a
-pretty little thing&mdash;all golden brown and speckly. I loved her as much as
-I ever loved any pet. She was never killed&mdash;she died of old age. Mother
-wouldn&rsquo;t have her killed because she was my pet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If <i>my</i> mother had been living she wouldn&rsquo;t have let Adam be
-killed,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;For that matter, father wouldn&rsquo;t have
-either, if he&rsquo;d been home and known of it. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i> he
-wouldn&rsquo;t, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure, too,&rdquo; said Rosemary. There was a little added
-flush on her face. She looked rather conscious but Faith noticed nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Was it <i>very</i> wicked of me not to tell Mr. Perry his coat-tails were
-scorching?&rdquo; she asked anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, terribly wicked,&rdquo; answered Rosemary, with dancing eyes.
-&ldquo;But <i>I</i> would have been just as naughty, Faith&mdash;<i>I</i>
-wouldn&rsquo;t have told him they were scorching&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t
-believe I would ever have been a bit sorry for my wickedness, either.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una thought I should have told him because he was a minister.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dearest, if a minister doesn&rsquo;t behave as a gentleman we are not
-bound to respect his coat-tails. I know <i>I</i> would just have loved to see
-Jimmy Perry&rsquo;s coat-tails burning up. It must have been fun.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Both laughed; but Faith ended with a bitter little sigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, anyway, Adam is dead and I am <i>never</i> going to love anything
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t say that, dear. We miss so much out of life if we
-don&rsquo;t love. The more we love the richer life is&mdash;even if it is only
-some little furry or feathery pet. Would you like a canary, Faith&mdash;a
-little golden bit of a canary? If you would I&rsquo;ll give you one. We have
-two up home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I <i>would</i> like that,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;I love birds.
-Only&mdash;would Aunt Martha&rsquo;s cat eat it? It&rsquo;s so <i>tragic</i> to have
-your pets eaten. I don&rsquo;t think I could endure it a second time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you hang the cage far enough from the wall I don&rsquo;t think the
-cat could harm it. I&rsquo;ll tell you just how to take care of it and
-I&rsquo;ll bring it to Ingleside for you the next time I come down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To herself, Rosemary was thinking,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will give every gossip in the Glen something to talk of, but I <i>will</i>
-not care. I want to comfort this poor little heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was comforted. Sympathy and understanding were very sweet. She and Miss
-Rosemary sat on the old pine until the twilight crept softly down over the
-white valley and the evening star shone over the gray maple grove. Faith told
-Rosemary all her small history and hopes, her likes and dislikes, the ins and
-outs of life at the manse, the ups and downs of school society. Finally they
-parted firm friends.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith was, as usual, lost in dreams when supper began that evening, but
-presently a name pierced his abstraction and brought him back to reality. Faith
-was telling Una of her meeting with Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is just lovely, I think,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Just as nice as
-Mrs. Blythe&mdash;but different. I felt as if I wanted to hug her. She did hug
-<i>me</i>&mdash;such a nice, velvety hug. And she called me &lsquo;dearest.&rsquo; It
-<i>thriled</i> me. I could tell her <i>anything</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you liked Miss West, Faith?&rdquo; Mr. Meredith asked, with a rather
-odd intonation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love her,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap21"></a>CHAPTER XXI.<br />
-THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD</h2>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith walked meditatively through the clear crispness of a winter night
-in Rainbow Valley. The hills beyond glistened with the chill splendid lustre of
-moonlight on snow. Every little fir tree in the long valley sang its own wild
-song to the harp of wind and frost. His children and the Blythe lads and lasses
-were coasting down the eastern slope and whizzing over the glassy pond. They
-were having a glorious time and their gay voices and gayer laughter echoed up
-and down the valley, dying away in elfin cadences among the trees. On the right
-the lights of Ingleside gleamed through the maple grove with the genial lure
-and invitation which seems always to glow in the beacons of a home where we
-know there is love and good-cheer and a welcome for all kin, whether of flesh
-or spirit. Mr. Meredith liked very well on occasion to spend an evening arguing
-with the doctor by the drift wood fire, where the famous china dogs of
-Ingleside kept ceaseless watch and ward, as became deities of the hearth, but
-to-night he did not look that way. Far on the western hill gleamed a paler but
-more alluring star. Mr. Meredith was on his way to see Rosemary West, and he
-meant to tell her something which had been slowly blossoming in his heart since
-their first meeting and had sprung into full flower on the evening when Faith
-had so warmly voiced her admiration for Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He had come to realize that he had learned to care for Rosemary. Not as he had
-cared for Cecilia, of course. <i>That</i> was entirely different. That love of romance
-and dream and glamour could never, he thought, return. But Rosemary was
-beautiful and sweet and dear&mdash;very dear. She was the best of companions.
-He was happier in her company than he had ever expected to be again. She would
-be an ideal mistress for his home, a good mother to his children.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-During the years of his widowhood Mr. Meredith had received innumerable hints
-from brother members of Presbytery and from many parishioners who could not be
-suspected of any ulterior motive, as well as from some who could, that he ought
-to marry again: But these hints never made any impression on him. It was
-commonly thought he was never aware of them. But he was quite acutely aware of
-them. And in his own occasional visitations of common sense he knew that the
-common sensible thing for him to do was to marry. But common sense was not the
-strong point of John Meredith, and to choose out, deliberately and
-cold-bloodedly, some &ldquo;suitable&rdquo; woman, as one might choose a
-housekeeper or a business partner, was something he was quite incapable of
-doing. How he hated that word &ldquo;suitable.&rdquo; It reminded him so
-strongly of James Perry. &ldquo;A <i>suit</i> able woman of <i>suit</i> able age,&rdquo; that
-unctuous brother of the cloth had said, in his far from subtle hint. For the
-moment John Meredith had had a perfectly unbelievable desire to rush madly away
-and propose marriage to the youngest, most unsuitable woman it was possible to
-discover.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott was his good friend and he liked her. But when she had
-bluntly told him he should marry again he felt as if she had torn away the veil
-that hung before some sacred shrine of his innermost life, and he had been more
-or less afraid of her ever since. He knew there were women in his congregation
-&ldquo;of suitable age&rdquo; who would marry him quite readily. That fact had
-seeped through all his abstraction very early in his ministry in Glen St. Mary.
-They were good, substantial, uninteresting women, one or two fairly comely, the
-others not exactly so and John Meredith would as soon have thought of marrying
-any one of them as of hanging himself. He had some ideals to which no seeming
-necessity could make him false. He could ask no woman to fill Cecilia&rsquo;s
-place in his home unless he could offer her at least some of the affection and
-homage he had given to his girlish bride. And where, in his limited feminine
-acquaintance, was such a woman to be found?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West had come into his life on that autumn evening bringing with her
-an atmosphere in which his spirit recognized native air. Across the gulf of
-strangerhood they clasped hands of friendship. He knew her better in that ten
-minutes by the hidden spring than he knew Emmeline Drew or Elizabeth Kirk or
-Amy Annetta Douglas in a year, or could know them, in a century. He had fled to
-her for comfort when Mrs. Alec Davis had outraged his mind and soul and had
-found it. Since then he had gone often to the house on the hill, slipping
-through the shadowy paths of night in Rainbow Valley so astutely that Glen
-gossip could never be absolutely certain that he <i>did</i> go to see Rosemary West.
-Once or twice he had been caught in the West living room by other visitors;
-that was all the Ladies&rsquo; Aid had to go by. But when Elizabeth Kirk heard
-it she put away a secret hope she had allowed herself to cherish, without a
-change of expression on her kind plain face, and Emmeline Drew resolved that
-the next time she saw a certain old bachelor of Lowbridge she would not snub
-him as she had done at a previous meeting. Of course, if Rosemary West was out
-to catch the minister she would catch him; she looked younger than she was and
-<i>men</i> thought her pretty; besides, the West girls had money!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is to be hoped that he won&rsquo;t be so absent-minded as to propose
-to Ellen by mistake,&rdquo; was the only malicious thing she allowed herself to
-say to a sympathetic sister Drew. Emmeline bore no further grudge towards
-Rosemary. When all was said and done, an unencumbered bachelor was far better
-than a widower with four children. It had been only the glamour of the manse
-that had temporarily blinded Emmeline&rsquo;s eyes to the better part.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A sled with three shrieking occupants sped past Mr. Meredith to the pond.
-Faith&rsquo;s long curls streamed in the wind and her laughter rang above that
-of the others. John Meredith looked after them kindly and longingly. He was
-glad that his children had such chums as the Blythes&mdash;glad that they had
-so wise and gay and tender a friend as Mrs. Blythe. But they needed something
-more, and that something would be supplied when he brought Rosemary West as a
-bride to the old manse. There was in her a quality essentially maternal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was Saturday night and he did not often go calling on Saturday night, which
-was supposed to be dedicated to a thoughtful revision of Sunday&rsquo;s sermon.
-But he had chosen this night because he had learned that Ellen West was going
-to be away and Rosemary would be alone. Often as he had spent pleasant evenings
-in the house on the hill he had never, since that first meeting at the spring,
-seen Rosemary alone. Ellen had always been there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not precisely object to Ellen being there. He liked Ellen West very much
-and they were the best of friends. Ellen had an almost masculine understanding
-and a sense of humour which his own shy, hidden appreciation of fun found very
-agreeable. He liked her interest in politics and world events. There was no man
-in the Glen, not even excepting Dr. Blythe, who had a better grasp of such
-things.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it is just as well to be interested in things as long as you
-live,&rdquo; she had said. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re not, it doesn&rsquo;t seem to
-me that there&rsquo;s much difference between the quick and the dead.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He liked her pleasant, deep, rumbly voice; he liked the hearty laugh with which
-she always ended up some jolly and well-told story. She never gave him digs
-about his children as other Glen women did; she never bored him with local
-gossip; she had no malice and no pettiness. She was always splendidly sincere.
-Mr. Meredith, who had picked up Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s way of classifying
-people, considered that Ellen belonged to the race of Joseph. Altogether, an
-admirable woman for a sister-in-law. Nevertheless, a man did not want even the
-most admirable of women around when he was proposing to another woman. And
-Ellen was always around. She did not insist on talking to Mr. Meredith herself
-all the time. She let Rosemary have a fair share of him. Many evenings, indeed,
-Ellen effaced herself almost totally, sitting back in the corner with St.
-George in her lap, and letting Mr. Meredith and Rosemary talk and sing and read
-books together. Sometimes they quite forgot her presence. But if their
-conversation or choice of duets ever betrayed the least tendency to what Ellen
-considered philandering, Ellen promptly nipped that tendency in the bud and
-blotted Rosemary out for the rest of the evening. But not even the grimmest of
-amiable dragons can altogether prevent a certain subtle language of eye and
-smile and eloquent silence; and so the minister&rsquo;s courtship progressed
-after a fashion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But if it was ever to reach a climax that climax must come when Ellen was away.
-And Ellen was so seldom away, especially in winter. She found her own fireside
-the pleasantest place in the world, she vowed. Gadding had no attraction for
-her. She was fond of company but she wanted it at home. Mr. Meredith had almost
-been driven to the conclusion that he must write to Rosemary what he wanted to
-say, when Ellen casually announced one evening that she was going to a silver
-wedding next Saturday night. She had been bridesmaid when the principals were
-married. Only old guests were invited, so Rosemary was not included. Mr.
-Meredith pricked up his ears a trifle and a gleam flashed into his dreamy dark
-eyes. Both Ellen and Rosemary saw it; and both Ellen and Rosemary felt, with a
-tingling shock, that Mr. Meredith would certainly come up the hill next
-Saturday night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Might as well have it over with, St. George,&rdquo; Ellen sternly told
-the black cat, after Mr. Meredith had gone home and Rosemary had silently gone
-upstairs. &ldquo;He means to ask her, St. George&mdash;I&rsquo;m perfectly sure
-of that. So he might as well have his chance to do it and find out he
-can&rsquo;t get her, George. She&rsquo;d rather like to take him, Saint. I know
-that&mdash;but she promised, and she&rsquo;s got to keep her promise. I&rsquo;m
-rather sorry in some ways, St. George. I don&rsquo;t know of a man I&rsquo;d
-sooner have for a brother-in-law if a brother-in-law was convenient. I
-haven&rsquo;t a thing against him, Saint&mdash;not a thing except that he
-won&rsquo;t see and can&rsquo;t be made to see that the Kaiser is a menace to
-the peace of Europe. That&rsquo;s <i>his</i> blind spot. But he&rsquo;s good company
-and I like him. A woman can say anything she likes to a man with a mouth like
-John Meredith&rsquo;s and be sure of not being misunderstood. Such a man is
-more precious than rubies, Saint&mdash;and much rarer, George. But he
-can&rsquo;t have Rosemary&mdash;and I suppose when he finds out he can&rsquo;t
-have her he&rsquo;ll drop us both. And we&rsquo;ll miss him,
-Saint&mdash;we&rsquo;ll miss him something scandalous, George. But she
-promised, and I&rsquo;ll see that she keeps her promise!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s face looked almost ugly in its lowering resolution. Upstairs
-Rosemary was crying into her pillow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So Mr. Meredith found his lady alone and looking very beautiful. Rosemary had
-not made any special toilet for the occasion; she wanted to, but she thought it
-would be absurd to dress up for a man you meant to refuse. So she wore her
-plain dark afternoon dress and looked like a queen in it. Her suppressed
-excitement coloured her face to brilliancy, her great blue eyes were pools of
-light less placid than usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She wished the interview were over. She had looked forward to it all day with
-dread. She felt quite sure that John Meredith cared a great deal for her after
-a fashion&mdash;and she felt just as sure that he did not care for her as he
-had cared for his first love. She felt that her refusal would disappoint him
-considerably, but she did not think it would altogether overwhelm him. Yet she
-hated to make it; hated for his sake and&mdash;Rosemary was quite honest with
-herself&mdash;for her own. She knew she could have loved John Meredith
-if&mdash;if it had been permissible. She knew that life would be a blank thing
-if, rejected as lover, he refused longer to be a friend. She knew that she
-could be very happy with him and that she could make him happy. But between her
-and happiness stood the prison gate of the promise she had made to Ellen years
-ago. Rosemary could not remember her father. He had died when she was only
-three years old. Ellen, who had been thirteen, remembered him, but with no
-special tenderness. He had been a stern, reserved man many years older than his
-fair, pretty wife. Five years later their brother of twelve died also; since
-his death the two girls had always lived alone with their mother. They had
-never mingled very freely in the social life of the Glen or Lowbridge, though
-where they went the wit and spirit of Ellen and the sweetness and beauty of
-Rosemary made them welcome guests. Both had what was called &ldquo;a
-disappointment&rdquo; in their girlhood. The sea had not given up
-Rosemary&rsquo;s lover; and Norman Douglas, then a handsome, red-haired young
-giant, noted for wild driving and noisy though harmless escapades, had
-quarrelled with Ellen and left her in a fit of pique.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There were not lacking candidates for both Martin&rsquo;s and Norman&rsquo;s
-places, but none seemed to find favour in the eyes of the West girls, who
-drifted slowly out of youth and bellehood without any seeming regret. They were
-devoted to their mother, who was a chronic invalid. The three had a little
-circle of home interests&mdash;books and pets and flowers&mdash;which made them
-happy and contented.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. West&rsquo;s death, which occurred on Rosemary&rsquo;s twenty-fifth
-birthday, was a bitter grief to them. At first they were intolerably lonely.
-Ellen, especially, continued to grieve and brood, her long, moody musings
-broken only by fits of stormy, passionate weeping. The old Lowbridge doctor
-told Rosemary that he feared permanent melancholy or worse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Once, when Ellen had sat all day, refusing either to speak or eat, Rosemary had
-flung herself on her knees by her sister&rsquo;s side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Ellen, you have me yet,&rdquo; she said imploringly. &ldquo;Am I
-nothing to you? We have always loved each other so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t have you always,&rdquo; Ellen had said, breaking her
-silence with harsh intensity. &ldquo;You will marry and leave me. I shall be
-left all alone. I cannot bear the thought&mdash;I <i>cannot</i>. I would rather
-die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will never marry,&rdquo; said Rosemary, &ldquo;never, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen bent forward and looked searchingly into Rosemary&rsquo;s eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you promise me that solemnly?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Promise it on
-mother&rsquo;s Bible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary assented at once, quite willing to humour Ellen. What did it matter?
-She knew quite well she would never want to marry any one. Her love had gone
-down with Martin Crawford to the deeps of the sea; and without love she could
-not marry any one. So she promised readily, though Ellen made rather a fearsome
-rite of it. They clasped hands over the Bible, in their mother&rsquo;s vacant
-room, and both vowed to each other that they would never marry and would always
-live together.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s condition improved from that hour. She soon regained her normal
-cheery poise. For ten years she and Rosemary lived in the old house happily,
-undisturbed by any thought of marrying or giving in marriage. Their promise sat
-very lightly on them. Ellen never failed to remind her sister of it whenever
-any eligible male creature crossed their paths, but she had never been really
-alarmed until John Meredith came home that night with Rosemary. As for
-Rosemary, Ellen&rsquo;s obsession regarding that promise had always been a
-little matter of mirth to her&mdash;until lately. Now, it was a merciless
-fetter, self-imposed but never to be shaken off. Because of it to-night she
-must turn her face from happiness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was true that the shy, sweet, rosebud love she had given to her boy-lover
-she could never give to another. But she knew now that she could give to John
-Meredith a love richer and more womanly. She knew that he touched deeps in her
-nature that Martin had never touched&mdash;that had not, perhaps, been in the
-girl of seventeen to touch. And she must send him away to-night&mdash;send him
-back to his lonely hearth and his empty life and his heart-breaking problems,
-because she had promised Ellen, ten years before, on their mother&rsquo;s
-Bible, that she would never marry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith did not immediately grasp his opportunity. On the contrary, he
-talked for two good hours on the least lover-like of subjects. He even tried
-politics, though politics always bored Rosemary. The later began to think that
-she had been altogether mistaken, and her fears and expectations suddenly
-seemed to her grotesque. She felt flat and foolish. The glow went out of her
-face and the lustre out of her eyes. John Meredith had not the slightest
-intention of asking her to marry him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then, quite suddenly, he rose, came across the room, and standing by her
-chair, he asked it. The room had grown terribly still. Even St. George ceased
-to purr. Rosemary heard her own heart beating and was sure John Meredith must
-hear it too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now was the time for her to say no, gently but firmly. She had been ready for
-days with her stilted, regretful little formula. And now the words of it had
-completely vanished from her mind. She had to say no&mdash;and she suddenly
-found she could not say it. It was the impossible word. She knew now that it
-was not that she <i>could</i> have loved John Meredith, but that she <i>did</i> love him. The
-thought of putting him from her life was agony.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She must say <i>something;</i> she lifted her bowed golden head and asked him
-stammeringly to give her a few days for&mdash;for consideration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith was a little surprised. He was not vainer than any man has a
-right to be, but he had expected that Rosemary West would say yes. He had been
-tolerably sure she cared for him. Then why this doubt&mdash;this hesitation?
-She was not a school girl to be uncertain as to her own mind. He felt an ugly
-shock of disappointment and dismay. But he assented to her request with his
-unfailing gentle courtesy and went away at once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will tell you in a few days,&rdquo; said Rosemary, with downcast eyes
-and burning face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the door shut behind him she went back into the room and wrung her hands.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap22"></a>CHAPTER XXII.<br />
-ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT</h2>
-
-<p>
-At midnight Ellen West was walking home from the Pollock silver wedding. She
-had stayed a little while after the other guests had gone, to help the
-gray-haired bride wash the dishes. The distance between the two houses was not
-far and the road good, so that Ellen was enjoying the walk back home in the
-moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The evening had been a pleasant one. Ellen, who had not been to a party for
-years, found it very pleasant. All the guests had been members of her old set
-and there was no intrusive youth to spoil the flavour, for the only son of the
-bride and groom was far away at college and could not be present. Norman
-Douglas had been there and they had met socially for the first time in years,
-though she had seen him once or twice in church that winter. Not the least
-sentiment was awakened in Ellen&rsquo;s heart by their meeting. She was
-accustomed to wonder, when she thought about it at all, how she could ever have
-fancied him or felt so badly over his sudden marriage. But she had rather liked
-meeting him again. She had forgotten how bracing and stimulating he could be.
-No gathering was ever stagnant when Norman Douglas was present. Everybody had
-been surprised when Norman came. It was well known he never went anywhere. The
-Pollocks had invited him because he had been one of the original guests, but
-they never thought he would come. He had taken his second cousin, Amy Annetta
-Douglas, out to supper and seemed rather attentive to her. But Ellen sat across
-the table from him and had a spirited argument with him&mdash;an argument
-during which all his shouting and banter could not fluster her and in which she
-came off best, flooring Norman so composedly and so completely that he was
-silent for ten minutes. At the end of which time he had muttered in his ruddy
-beard&mdash;&ldquo;spunky as ever&mdash;spunky as ever&rdquo;&mdash;and began
-to hector Amy Annetta, who giggled foolishly over his sallies where Ellen would
-have retorted bitingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen thought these things over as she walked home, tasting them with
-reminiscent relish. The moonlit air sparkled with frost. The snow crisped under
-her feet. Below her lay the Glen with the white harbour beyond. There was a
-light in the manse study. So John Meredith had gone home. Had he asked Rosemary
-to marry him? And after what fashion had she made her refusal known? Ellen felt
-that she would never know this, though she was quite curious. She was sure
-Rosemary would never tell her anything about it and she would not dare to ask.
-She must just be content with the fact of the refusal. After all, that was the
-only thing that really mattered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope he&rsquo;ll have sense enough to come back once in a while and be
-friendly,&rdquo; she said to herself. She disliked so much to be alone that
-thinking aloud was one of her devices for circumventing unwelcome solitude.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s awful never to have a man-body with some brains to talk to
-once in a while. And like as not he&rsquo;ll never come near the house again.
-There&rsquo;s Norman Douglas, too&mdash;I like that man, and I&rsquo;d like to
-have a good rousing argument with him now and then. But he&rsquo;d never dare
-come up for fear people would think he was courting me again&mdash;for fear
-<i>I&rsquo;d</i> think it, too, most likely&mdash;though he&rsquo;s more a stranger to
-me now than John Meredith. It seems like a dream that we could ever have been
-beaus. But there it is&mdash;there&rsquo;s only two men in the Glen I&rsquo;d
-ever want to talk to&mdash;and what with gossip and this wretched love-making
-business it&rsquo;s not likely I&rsquo;ll ever see either of them again. I
-could,&rdquo; said Ellen, addressing the unmoved stars with a spiteful
-emphasis, &ldquo;I could have made a better world myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She paused at her gate with a sudden vague feeling of alarm. There was still a
-light in the living-room and to and fro across the window-shades went the
-shadow of a woman walking restlessly up and down. What was Rosemary doing up at
-this hour of the night? And why was she striding about like a lunatic?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen went softly in. As she opened the hall door Rosemary came out of the
-room. She was flushed and breathless. An atmosphere of stress and passion hung
-about her like a garment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why aren&rsquo;t you in bed, Rosemary?&rdquo; demanded Ellen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come in here,&rdquo; said Rosemary intensely. &ldquo;I want to tell you
-something.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen composedly removed her wraps and overshoes, and followed her sister into
-the warm, fire-lighted room. She stood with her hand on the table and waited.
-She was looking very handsome herself, in her own grim, black-browed style. The
-new black velvet dress, with its train and V-neck, which she had made purposely
-for the party, became her stately, massive figure. She wore coiled around her
-neck the rich heavy necklace of amber beads which was a family heirloom. Her
-walk in the frosty air had stung her cheeks into a glowing scarlet. But her
-steel-blue eyes were as icy and unyielding as the sky of the winter night. She
-stood waiting in a silence which Rosemary could break only by a convulsive
-effort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, Mr. Meredith was here this evening.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And&mdash;and&mdash;he asked me to marry him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I expected. Of course, you refused him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary.&rdquo; Ellen clenched her hands and took an involuntary step
-forward. &ldquo;Do you mean to tell me that you accepted him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;no.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen recovered her self-command.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>did</i> you do then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I asked him to give me a few days to think it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hardly see why that was necessary,&rdquo; said Ellen, coldly
-contemptuous, &ldquo;when there is only the one answer you can make him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary held out her hands beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen,&rdquo; she said desperately, &ldquo;I love John Meredith&mdash;I
-want to be his wife. Will you set me free from that promise?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ellen, merciless, because she was sick from fear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen&mdash;Ellen&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; interrupted Ellen. &ldquo;I did not ask you for that
-promise. You offered it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know&mdash;I know. But I did not think then that I could ever care for
-anyone again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You offered it,&rdquo; went on Ellen unmovably. &ldquo;You promised it
-over our mother&rsquo;s Bible. It was more than a promise&mdash;it was an oath.
-Now you want to break it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only asked you to set me free from it, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will not do it. A promise is a promise in my eyes. I will not do it.
-Break your promise&mdash;be forsworn if you will&mdash;but it shall not be with
-any assent of mine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very hard on me, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hard on you! And what of me? Have you ever given a thought to what my
-loneliness would be here if you left me? I could not bear it&mdash;I would go
-crazy. I <i>cannot</i> live alone. Haven&rsquo;t I been a good sister to you? Have I
-ever opposed any wish of yours? Haven&rsquo;t I indulged you in
-everything?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why do you want to leave me for this man whom you hadn&rsquo;t seen
-a year ago?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love him, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Love! You talk like a school miss instead of a middle-aged woman. He
-doesn&rsquo;t love you. He wants a housekeeper and a governess. You don&rsquo;t
-love him. You want to be &lsquo;Mrs.&rsquo;&mdash;you are one of those
-weak-minded women who think it&rsquo;s a disgrace to be ranked as an old maid.
-That&rsquo;s all there is to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen could not, or would not, understand. There was no use
-arguing with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you won&rsquo;t release me, Ellen?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I won&rsquo;t. And I won&rsquo;t talk of it again. You promised and
-you&rsquo;ve got to keep your word. That&rsquo;s all. Go to bed. Look at the
-time! You&rsquo;re all romantic and worked up. To-morrow you&rsquo;ll be more
-sensible. At any rate, don&rsquo;t let me hear any more of this nonsense.
-Go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary went without another word, pale and spiritless. Ellen walked stormily
-about the room for a few minutes, then paused before the chair where St. George
-had been calmly sleeping through the whole evening. A reluctant smile
-overspread her dark face. There had been only one time in her life&mdash;the
-time of her mother&rsquo;s death&mdash;when Ellen had not been able to temper
-tragedy with comedy. Even in that long ago bitterness, when Norman Douglas had,
-after a fashion, jilted her, she had laughed at herself quite as often as she
-had cried.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I expect there&rsquo;ll be some sulking, St. George. Yes, Saint, I
-expect we are in for a few unpleasant foggy days. Well, we&rsquo;ll weather
-them through, George. We&rsquo;ve dealt with foolish children before, Saint.
-Rosemary&rsquo;ll sulk a while&mdash;and then she&rsquo;ll get over
-it&mdash;and all will be as before, George. She promised&mdash;and she&rsquo;s
-got to keep her promise. And that&rsquo;s the last word on the subject
-I&rsquo;ll say to you or her or anyone, Saint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Ellen lay savagely awake till morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no sulking, however. Rosemary was pale and quiet the next day, but
-beyond that Ellen could detect no difference in her. Certainly, she seemed to
-bear Ellen no grudge. It was stormy, so no mention was made of going to church.
-In the afternoon Rosemary shut herself in her room and wrote a note to John
-Meredith. She could not trust herself to say &ldquo;no&rdquo; in person. She
-felt quite sure that if he suspected she was saying &ldquo;no&rdquo;
-reluctantly he would not take it for an answer, and she could not face pleading
-or entreaty. She must make him think she cared nothing at all for him and she
-could do that only by letter. She wrote him the stiffest, coolest little
-refusal imaginable. It was barely courteous; it certainly left no loophole of
-hope for the boldest lover&mdash;and John Meredith was anything but that. He
-shrank into himself, hurt and mortified, when he read Rosemary&rsquo;s letter
-next day in his dusty study. But under his mortification a dreadful realization
-presently made itself felt. He had thought he did not love Rosemary as deeply
-as he had loved Cecilia. Now, when he had lost her, he knew that he did. She
-was everything to him&mdash;everything! And he must put her out of his life
-completely. Even friendship was impossible now. Life stretched before him in
-intolerable dreariness. He must go on&mdash;there was his work&mdash;his
-children&mdash;but the heart had gone out of him. He sat alone all that evening
-in his dark, cold, comfortless study with his head bowed on his hands. Up on
-the hill Rosemary had a headache and went early to bed, while Ellen remarked to
-St. George, purring his disdain of foolish humankind, who did not know that a
-soft cushion was the only thing that really mattered,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What would women do if headaches had never been invented, St. George?
-But never mind, Saint. We&rsquo;ll just wink the other eye for a few weeks. I
-admit I don&rsquo;t feel comfortable myself, George. I feel as if I had drowned
-a kitten. But she promised, Saint&mdash;and she was the one to offer it,
-George. Bismillah!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap23"></a>CHAPTER XXIII.<br />
-THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB</h2>
-
-<p>
-A light rain had been falling all day&mdash;a little, delicate, beautiful
-spring rain, that somehow seemed to hint and whisper of mayflowers and wakening
-violets. The harbour and the gulf and the low-lying shore fields had been dim
-with pearl-gray mists. But now in the evening the rain had ceased and the mists
-had blown out to sea. Clouds sprinkled the sky over the harbour like little
-fiery roses. Beyond it the hills were dark against a spendthrift splendour of
-daffodil and crimson. A great silvery evening star was watching over the bar. A
-brisk, dancing, new-sprung wind was blowing up from Rainbow Valley, resinous
-with the odours of fir and damp mosses. It crooned in the old spruces around
-the graveyard and ruffled Faith&rsquo;s splendid curls as she sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone with her arms round Mary Vance and Una. Carl and
-Jerry were sitting opposite them on another tombstone and all were rather full
-of mischief after being cooped up all day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The air just <i>shines</i> to-night, doesn&rsquo;t it? It&rsquo;s been washed
-so clean, you see,&rdquo; said Faith happily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance eyed her gloomily. Knowing what she knew, or fancied she knew, Mary
-considered that Faith was far too light-hearted. Mary had something on her mind
-to say and she meant to say it before she went home. Mrs. Elliott had sent her
-up to the manse with some new-laid eggs, and had told her not to stay longer
-than half an hour. The half hour was nearly up, so Mary uncurled her cramped
-legs from under her and said abruptly,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind about the air. Just you listen to me. You manse young ones
-have just got to behave yourselves better than you&rsquo;ve been doing this
-spring&mdash;that&rsquo;s all there is to it. I just come up to-night a-purpose
-to tell you so. The way people are talking about you is awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have we been doing now?&rdquo; cried Faith in amazement, pulling
-her arm away from Mary. Una&rsquo;s lips trembled and her sensitive little soul
-shrank within her. Mary was always so brutally frank. Jerry began to whistle
-out of bravado. He meant to let Mary see he didn&rsquo;t care for <i>her</i> tirades.
-Their behaviour was no business of <i>hers</i> anyway. What right had <i>she</i> to lecture
-them on their conduct?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doing now! You&rsquo;re doing <i>all</i> the time,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;Just as soon as the talk about one of your didos fades away you do
-something else to start it up again. It seems to me you haven&rsquo;t any idea
-of how manse children ought to behave!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe <i>you</i> can tell us,&rdquo; said Jerry, killingly sarcastic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sarcasm was quite thrown away on Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> can tell you what will happen if you don&rsquo;t learn to
-behave yourselves. The session will ask your father to resign. There now,
-Master Jerry-know-it-all. Mrs. Alec Davis said so to Mrs. Elliott. I heard her.
-I always have my ears pricked up when Mrs. Alec Davis comes to tea. She said
-you were all going from bad to worse and that though it was only what was to be
-expected when you had nobody to bring you up, still the congregation
-couldn&rsquo;t be expected to put up with it much longer, and something would
-have to be done. The Methodists just laugh and laugh at you, and that hurts the
-Presbyterian feelings. <i>She</i> says you all need a good dose of birch tonic.
-Lor&rsquo;, if that would make folks good <i>I</i> oughter be a young saint.
-I&rsquo;m not telling you this because I want to hurt <i>your</i> feelings. I&rsquo;m
-sorry for you&rdquo;&mdash;Mary was past mistress of the gentle art of
-condescension. &ldquo;<i>I</i> understand that you haven&rsquo;t much chance,
-the way things are. But other people don&rsquo;t make as much allowance as
-<i>I</i> do. Miss Drew says Carl had a frog in his pocket in Sunday School last
-Sunday and it hopped out while she was hearing the lesson. She says she&rsquo;s
-going to give up the class. Why don&rsquo;t you keep your insecks home?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I popped it right back in again,&rdquo; said Carl. &ldquo;It
-didn&rsquo;t hurt anybody&mdash;a poor little frog! And I wish old Jane Drew
-<i>would</i> give up our class. I hate her. Her own nephew had a dirty plug of tobacco
-in his pocket and offered us fellows a chew when Elder Clow was praying. I
-guess that&rsquo;s worse than a frog.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, &lsquo;cause frogs are more unexpected-like. They make more of a
-sensation. &lsquo;Sides, he wasn&rsquo;t caught at it. And then that praying
-competition you had last week has made a fearful scandal. Everybody is talking
-about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, the Blythes were in that as well as us,&rdquo; cried Faith,
-indignantly. &ldquo;It was Nan Blythe who suggested it in the first place. And
-Walter took the prize.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you get the credit of it any way. It wouldn&rsquo;t have been so
-bad if you hadn&rsquo;t had it in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think a graveyard was a very good place to pray in,&rdquo;
-retorted Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Deacon Hazard drove past when <i>you</i> were praying,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;and he saw and heard you, with your hands folded over your stomach, and
-groaning after every sentence. He thought you were making fun of <i>him</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I was,&rdquo; declared unabashed Jerry. &ldquo;Only I didn&rsquo;t
-know he was going by, of course. That was just a mean accident. <i>I</i>
-wasn&rsquo;t praying in real earnest&mdash;I knew I had no chance of winning
-the prize. So I was just getting what fun I could out of it. Walter Blythe can
-pray bully. Why, he can pray as well as dad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una is the only one of US who really likes praying,&rdquo; said Faith
-pensively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if praying scandalizes people so much we mustn&rsquo;t do it any
-more,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shucks, you can pray all you want to, only not in the
-graveyard&mdash;and don&rsquo;t make a game of it. That was what made it so
-bad&mdash;that, and having a tea-party on the tombstones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, a soap-bubble party then. You had <i>something</i>. The over-harbour
-people swear you had a tea-party, but I&rsquo;m willing to take your word. And
-you used this tombstone as a table.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Martha wouldn&rsquo;t let us blow bubbles in the house. She was
-awful cross that day,&rdquo; explained Jerry. &ldquo;And this old slab made
-such a jolly table.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Weren&rsquo;t they pretty?&rdquo; cried Faith, her eyes sparkling over
-the remembrance. &ldquo;They reflected the trees and the hills and the harbour
-like little fairy worlds, and when we shook them loose they floated away down
-to Rainbow Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All but one and it went over and bust up on the Methodist spire,&rdquo;
-said Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad we did it once, anyhow, before we found out it was
-wrong,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t have been wrong to blow them on the lawn,&rdquo; said
-Mary impatiently. &ldquo;Seems like I can&rsquo;t knock any sense into your
-heads. You&rsquo;ve been told often enough you shouldn&rsquo;t play in the
-graveyard. The Methodists are sensitive about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We forget,&rdquo; said Faith dolefully. &ldquo;And the lawn is so
-small&mdash;and so caterpillary&mdash;and so full of shrubs and things. We
-can&rsquo;t be in Rainbow Valley all the time&mdash;and where are we to
-go?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the things you <i>do</i> in the graveyard. It wouldn&rsquo;t matter
-if you just sat here and talked quiet, same as we&rsquo;re doing now. Well, I
-don&rsquo;t know what is going to come of it all, but I <i>do</i> know that Elder
-Warren is going to speak to your pa about it. Deacon Hazard is his
-cousin.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish they wouldn&rsquo;t bother father about us,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, people think he ought to bother himself about you a little more.
-<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t&mdash;<i>I</i> understand him. He&rsquo;s a child in some
-ways himself&mdash;that&rsquo;s what he is, and needs some one to look after
-him as bad as you do. Well, perhaps he&rsquo;ll have some one before long, if
-all tales is true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t you got any idea&mdash;honest?&rdquo; demanded Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no. What <i>do</i> you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you are a lot of innocents, upon my word. Why, <i>every</i>body is
-talking of it. Your pa goes to see Rosemary West. <i>She</i> is going to be your
-step-ma.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it,&rdquo; cried Una, flushing crimson.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, <i>I</i> dunno. I just go by what folks say. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t
-give it for a fact. But it would be a good thing. Rosemary West&rsquo;d make
-you toe the mark if she came here, I&rsquo;ll bet a cent, for all she&rsquo;s
-so sweet and smiley on the face of her. They&rsquo;re always that way till
-they&rsquo;ve caught them. But you need some one to bring you up. You&rsquo;re
-disgracing your pa and I feel for him. I&rsquo;ve always thought an awful lot
-of your pa ever since that night he talked to me so nice. I&rsquo;ve never said
-a single swear word since, or told a lie. And I&rsquo;d like to see him happy
-and comfortable, with his buttons on and his meals decent, and you young ones
-licked into shape, and that old cat of a Martha put in <i>her</i> proper place. The
-way she looked at the eggs I brought her to-night. &lsquo;I hope they&rsquo;re
-fresh,&rsquo; says she. I just wished they <i>was</i> rotten. But you just mind that
-she gives you all one for breakfast, including your pa. Make a fuss if she
-doesn&rsquo;t. That was what they was sent up for&mdash;but I don&rsquo;t trust
-old Martha. She&rsquo;s quite capable of feeding &lsquo;em to her cat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary&rsquo;s tongue being temporarily tired, a brief silence fell over the
-graveyard. The manse children did not feel like talking. They were digesting
-the new and not altogether palatable ideas Mary had suggested to them. Jerry
-and Carl were somewhat startled. But, after all, what did it matter? And it
-wasn&rsquo;t likely there was a word of truth in it. Faith, on the whole, was
-pleased. Only Una was seriously upset. She felt that she would like to get away
-and cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will there be any stars in my crown?&rdquo; sang the Methodist choir,
-beginning to practise in the Methodist church.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> want just three,&rdquo; said Mary, whose theological knowledge
-had increased notably since her residence with Mrs. Elliott. &ldquo;Just
-three&mdash;setting up on my head, like a corownet, a big one in the middle and
-a small one each side.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are there different sizes in souls?&rdquo; asked Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course. Why, little babies must have smaller ones than big men. Well,
-it&rsquo;s getting dark and I must scoot home. Mrs. Elliott doesn&rsquo;t like
-me to be out after dark. Laws, when I lived with Mrs. Wiley the dark was just
-the same as the daylight to me. I didn&rsquo;t mind it no more&rsquo;n a gray
-cat. Them days seem a hundred years ago. Now, you mind what I&rsquo;ve said and
-try to behave yourselves, for you pa&rsquo;s sake. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> always back you
-up and defend you&mdash;you can be dead sure of that. Mrs. Elliott says she
-never saw the like of me for sticking up for my friends. I was real sassy to
-Mrs. Alec Davis about you and Mrs. Elliott combed me down for it afterwards.
-The fair Cornelia has a tongue of her own and no mistake. But she was pleased
-underneath for all, &lsquo;cause she hates old Kitty Alec and she&rsquo;s real
-fond of you. <i>I</i> can see through folks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary sailed off, excellently well pleased with herself, leaving a rather
-depressed little group behind her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary Vance always says something that makes us feel bad when she comes
-up,&rdquo; said Una resentfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we&rsquo;d left her to starve in the old barn,&rdquo; said Jerry
-vindictively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s wicked, Jerry,&rdquo; rebuked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;May as well have the game as the name,&rdquo; retorted unrepentant
-Jerry. &ldquo;If people say we&rsquo;re so bad let&rsquo;s <i>be</i> bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But not if it hurts father,&rdquo; pleaded Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry squirmed uncomfortably. He adored his father. Through the unshaded study
-window they could see Mr. Meredith at his desk. He did not seem to be either
-reading or writing. His head was in his hands and there was something in his
-whole attitude that spoke of weariness and dejection. The children suddenly
-felt it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I dare say somebody&rsquo;s been worrying him about us to-day,&rdquo;
-said Faith. &ldquo;I wish we <i>could</i> get along without making people talk.
-Oh&mdash;Jem Blythe! How you scared me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem Blythe had slipped into the graveyard and sat down beside the girls. He had
-been prowling about Rainbow Valley and had succeeded in finding the first
-little star-white cluster of arbutus for his mother. The manse children were
-rather silent after his coming. Jem was beginning to grow away from them
-somewhat this spring. He was studying for the entrance examination of
-Queen&rsquo;s Academy and stayed after school with the older pupils for extra
-lessons. Also, his evenings were so full of work that he seldom joined the
-others in Rainbow Valley now. He seemed to be drifting away into grown-up land.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with you all to-night?&rdquo; he asked.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no fun in you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not much,&rdquo; agreed Faith dolefully. &ldquo;There wouldn&rsquo;t be
-much fun in you either if <i>you</i> knew you were disgracing your father and making
-people talk about you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s been talking about you now?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Everybody&mdash;so Mary Vance says.&rdquo; And Faith poured out her
-troubles to sympathetic Jem. &ldquo;You see,&rdquo; she concluded dolefully,
-&ldquo;we&rsquo;ve nobody to bring us up. And so we get into scrapes and people
-think we&rsquo;re bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you bring yourselves up?&rdquo; suggested Jem.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what to do. Form a Good-Conduct Club and punish
-yourselves every time you do anything that&rsquo;s not right.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a good idea,&rdquo; said Faith, struck by it.
-&ldquo;But,&rdquo; she added doubtfully, &ldquo;things that don&rsquo;t seem a
-bit of harm to US seem simply dreadful to other people. How can we tell? We
-can&rsquo;t be bothering father all the time&mdash;and he has to be away a lot,
-anyhow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You could mostly tell if you stopped to think a thing over before doing
-it and ask yourselves what the congregation would say about it,&rdquo; said
-Jem. &ldquo;The trouble is you just rush into things and don&rsquo;t think them
-over at all. Mother says you&rsquo;re all too impulsive, just as she used to
-be. The Good-Conduct Club would help you to think, if you were fair and honest
-about punishing yourselves when you broke the rules. You&rsquo;d have to punish
-in some way that really <i>hurt</i>, or it wouldn&rsquo;t do any good.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whip each other?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not exactly. You&rsquo;d have to think up different ways of punishment
-to suit the person. You wouldn&rsquo;t punish each other&mdash;you&rsquo;d
-punish <i>yourselves</i>. I read all about such a club in a story-book. You try it and
-see how it works.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s,&rdquo; said Faith; and when Jem was gone they agreed they
-would. &ldquo;If things aren&rsquo;t right we&rsquo;ve just got to make them
-right,&rdquo; said Faith, resolutely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve got to be fair and square, as Jem says,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;This is a club to bring ourselves up, seeing there&rsquo;s nobody else
-to do it. There&rsquo;s no use in having many rules. Let&rsquo;s just have one
-and any of us that breaks it has got to be punished hard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But <i>how</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll think that up as we go along. We&rsquo;ll hold a session of
-the club here in the graveyard every night and talk over what we&rsquo;ve done
-through the day, and if we think we&rsquo;ve done anything that isn&rsquo;t
-right or that would disgrace dad the one that does it, or is responsible for
-it, must be punished. That&rsquo;s the rule. We&rsquo;ll all decide on the kind
-of punishment&mdash;it must be made to fit the crime, as Mr. Flagg says. And
-the one that&rsquo;s, guilty will be bound to carry it out and no shirking.
-There&rsquo;s going to be fun in this,&rdquo; concluded Jerry, with a relish.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You suggested the soap-bubble party,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But that was before we&rsquo;d formed the club,&rdquo; said Jerry
-hastily. &ldquo;Everything starts from to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But what if we can&rsquo;t agree on what&rsquo;s right, or what the
-punishment ought to be? S&rsquo;pose two of us thought of one thing and two
-another. There ought to be five in a club like this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can ask Jem Blythe to be umpire. He is the squarest boy in Glen St.
-Mary. But I guess we can settle our own affairs mostly. We want to keep this as
-much of a secret as we can. Don&rsquo;t breathe a word to Mary Vance.
-She&rsquo;d want to join and do the bringing up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> think,&rdquo; said Faith, &ldquo;that there&rsquo;s no use in
-spoiling every day by dragging punishments in. Let&rsquo;s have a punishment
-day.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;d better choose Saturday because there is no school to
-interfere,&rdquo; suggested Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And spoil the one holiday in the week,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;Not
-much! No, let&rsquo;s take Friday. That&rsquo;s fish day, anyhow, and we all
-hate fish. We may as well have all the disagreeable things in one day. Then
-other days we can go ahead and have a good time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Jerry authoritatively. &ldquo;Such a scheme
-wouldn&rsquo;t work at all. We&rsquo;ll just punish ourselves as we go along
-and keep a clear slate. Now, we all understand, don&rsquo;t we? This is a
-Good-Conduct Club, for the purpose of bringing ourselves up. We agree to punish
-ourselves for bad conduct, and always to stop before we do anything, no matter
-what, and ask ourselves if it is likely to hurt dad in any way, and any one who
-shirks is to be cast out of the club and never allowed to play with the rest of
-us in Rainbow Valley again. Jem Blythe to be umpire in case of disputes. No
-more taking bugs to Sunday School, Carl, and no more chewing gum in public, if
-you please, Miss Faith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No more making fun of elders praying or going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; retorted Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it isn&rsquo;t any harm to go to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; protested Jerry in amazement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott says it is, She says manse children have no business to go
-anywhere but to Presbyterian things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Darn it, I won&rsquo;t give up going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; cried Jerry. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s ten times more fun than ours
-is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said a naughty word,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;<i>Now</i>, you&rsquo;ve
-got to punish yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not till it&rsquo;s all down in black and white. We&rsquo;re only
-talking the club over. It isn&rsquo;t really formed until we&rsquo;ve written
-it out and signed it. There&rsquo;s got to be a constitution and by-laws. And
-you <i>know</i> there&rsquo;s nothing wrong in going to a prayer meeting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But it&rsquo;s not only the wrong things we&rsquo;re to punish ourselves
-for, but anything that might hurt father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It won&rsquo;t hurt anybody. You know Mrs. Elliott is cracked on the
-subject of Methodists. Nobody else makes any fuss about my going. I always
-behave myself. You ask Jem or Mrs. Blythe and see what they say. I&rsquo;ll
-abide by their opinion. I&rsquo;m going for the paper now and I&rsquo;ll bring
-out the lantern and we&rsquo;ll all sign.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Fifteen minutes later the document was solemnly signed on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, on the centre of which stood the smoky manse
-lantern, while the children knelt around it. Mrs. Elder Clow was going past at
-the moment and next day all the Glen heard that the manse children had been
-having another praying competition and had wound it up by chasing each other
-all over the graves with a lantern. This piece of embroidery was probably
-suggested by the fact that, after the signing and sealing was completed, Carl
-had taken the lantern and had walked circumspectly to the little hollow to
-examine his ant-hill. The others had gone quietly into the manse and to bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think it is true that father is going to marry Miss West?&rdquo;
-Una had tremulously asked of Faith, after their prayers had been said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know, but I&rsquo;d like it,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una, chokingly. &ldquo;She is nice the
-way she is. But Mary Vance says it changes people <i>altogether</i> to be made
-stepmothers. They get horrid cross and mean and hateful then, and turn your
-father against you. She says they&rsquo;re sure to do that. She never knew it
-to fail in a single case.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe Miss West would <i>ever</i> try to do that,&rdquo; cried
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary says <i>anybody</i> would. She knows <i>all</i> about stepmothers,
-Faith&mdash;she says she&rsquo;s seen hundreds of them&mdash;and you&rsquo;ve
-never seen one. Oh, Mary has told me blood-curdling things about them. She says
-she knew of one who whipped her husband&rsquo;s little girls on their bare
-shoulders till they bled, and then shut them up in a cold, dark coal cellar all
-night. She says they&rsquo;re <i>all</i> aching to do things like that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe Miss West would. You don&rsquo;t know her as well
-as I do, Una. Just think of that sweet little bird she sent me. I love it far
-more even than Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s just being a stepmother changes them. Mary says they
-can&rsquo;t help it. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind the whippings so much as having
-father hate us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know nothing could make father hate us. Don&rsquo;t be silly, Una. I
-dare say there&rsquo;s nothing to worry over. Likely if we run our club right
-and bring ourselves up properly father won&rsquo;t think of marrying any one.
-And if he does, I <i>know</i> Miss West will be lovely to us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Una had no such conviction and she cried herself to sleep.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap24"></a>CHAPTER XXIV.<br />
-A CHARITABLE IMPULSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-For a fortnight things ran smoothly in the Good-Conduct Club. It seemed to work
-admirably. Not once was Jem Blythe called in as umpire. Not once did any of the
-manse children set the Glen gossips by the ears. As for their minor
-peccadilloes at home, they kept sharp tabs on each other and gamely underwent
-their self-imposed punishment&mdash;generally a voluntary absence from some gay
-Friday night frolic in Rainbow Valley, or a sojourn in bed on some spring
-evening when all young bones ached to be out and away. Faith, for whispering in
-Sunday School, condemned herself to pass a whole day without speaking a single
-word, unless it was absolutely necessary, and accomplished it. It was rather
-unfortunate that Mr. Baker from over-harbour should have chosen that evening
-for calling at the manse, and that Faith should have happened to go to the
-door. Not one word did she reply to his genial greeting, but went silently away
-to call her father briefly. Mr. Baker was slightly offended and told his wife
-when he went home that that the biggest Meredith girl seemed a very shy, sulky
-little thing, without manners enough to speak when she was spoken to. But
-nothing worse came of it, and generally their penances did no harm to
-themselves or anybody else. All of them were beginning to feel quite cocksure
-that after all, it was a very easy matter to bring yourself up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I guess people will soon see that we can behave ourselves properly as
-well as anybody,&rdquo; said Faith jubilantly. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t hard when
-we put our minds to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She and Una were sitting on the Pollock tombstone. It had been a cold, raw, wet
-day of spring storm and Rainbow Valley was out of the question for girls,
-though the manse and the Ingleside boys were down there fishing. The rain had
-held up, but the east wind blew mercilessly in from the sea, cutting to bone
-and marrow. Spring was late in spite of its early promise, and there was even
-yet a hard drift of old snow and ice in the northern corner of the graveyard.
-Lida Marsh, who had come up to bring the manse a mess of herring, slipped in
-through the gate shivering. She belonged to the fishing village at the harbour
-mouth and her father had, for thirty years, made a practice of sending a mess
-from his first spring catch to the manse. He never darkened a church door; he
-was a hard drinker and a reckless man, but as long as he sent those herring up
-to the manse every spring, as his father had done before him, he felt
-comfortably sure that his account with the Powers That Govern was squared for
-the year. He would not have expected a good mackerel catch if he had not so
-sent the first fruits of the season.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida was a mite of ten and looked younger, because she was such a small,
-wizened little creature. To-night, as she sidled boldly enough up to the manse
-girls, she looked as if she had never been warm since she was born. Her face
-was purple and her pale-blue, bold little eyes were red and watery. She wore a
-tattered print dress and a ragged woollen comforter, tied across her thin
-shoulders and under her arms. She had walked the three miles from the harbour
-mouth barefooted, over a road where there was still snow and slush and mud. Her
-feet and legs were as purple as her face. But Lida did not mind this much. She
-was used to being cold, and she had been going barefooted for a month already,
-like all the other swarming young fry of the fishing village. There was no
-self-pity in her heart as she sat down on the tombstone and grinned cheerfully
-at Faith and Una. Faith and Una grinned cheerfully back. They knew Lida
-slightly, having met her once or twice the preceding summer when they had gone
-down the harbour with the Blythes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hello!&rdquo; said Lida, &ldquo;ain&rsquo;t this a fierce kind of a
-night? &lsquo;T&rsquo;ain&rsquo;t fit for a dog to be out, is it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why are you out?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pa made me bring you up some herring,&rdquo; returned Lida. She
-shivered, coughed, and stuck out her bare feet. Lida was not thinking about
-herself or her feet, and was making no bid for sympathy. She held her feet out
-instinctively to keep them from the wet grass around the tombstone. But Faith
-and Una were instantly swamped with a wave of pity for her. She looked so
-cold&mdash;so miserable.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, why are you barefooted on such a cold night?&rdquo; cried Faith.
-&ldquo;Your feet must be almost frozen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pretty near,&rdquo; said Lida proudly. &ldquo;I tell you it was fierce
-walking up that harbour road.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why didn&rsquo;t you put on your shoes and stockings?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hain&rsquo;t none to put on. All I had was wore out by the time winter
-was over,&rdquo; said Lida indifferently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment Faith stated in horror. This was terrible. Here was a little girl,
-almost a neighbour, half frozen because she had no shoes or stockings in this
-cruel spring weather. Impulsive Faith thought of nothing but the dreadfulness
-of it. In a moment she was pulling off her own shoes and stockings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here, take these and put them right on,&rdquo; she said, forcing them
-into the hands of the astonished Lida. &ldquo;Quick now. You&rsquo;ll catch
-your death of cold. I&rsquo;ve got others. Put them right on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida, recovering her wits, snatched at the offered gift, with a sparkle in her
-dull eyes. Sure she would put them on, and that mighty quick, before any one
-appeared with authority to recall them. In a minute she had pulled the
-stockings over her scrawny little legs and slipped Faith&rsquo;s shoes over her
-thick little ankles.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m obliged to you,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;but won&rsquo;t your
-folks be cross?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t care if they are,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Do you think I could see any one freezing to death without helping them
-if I could? It wouldn&rsquo;t be right, especially when my father&rsquo;s a
-minister.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you want them back? It&rsquo;s awful cold down at the harbour
-mouth&mdash;long after it&rsquo;s warm up here,&rdquo; said Lida slyly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, you&rsquo;re to keep them, of course. That is what I meant when I
-gave them. I have another pair of shoes and plenty of stockings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida had meant to stay awhile and talk to the girls about many things. But now
-she thought she had better get away before somebody came and made her yield up
-her booty. So she shuffled off through the bitter twilight, in the noiseless,
-shadowy way she had slipped in. As soon as she was out of sight of the manse
-she sat down, took off the shoes and stockings, and put them in her herring
-basket. She had no intention of keeping them on down that dirty harbour road.
-They were to be kept good for gala occasions. Not another little girl down at
-the harbour mouth had such fine black cashmere stockings and such smart, almost
-new shoes. Lida was furnished forth for the summer. She had no qualms in the
-matter. In her eyes the manse people were quite fabulously rich, and no doubt
-those girls had slathers of shoes and stockings. Then Lida ran down to the Glen
-village and played for an hour with the boys before Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s store,
-splashing about in a pool of slush with the maddest of them, until Mrs. Elliott
-came along and bade her begone home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think, Faith, that you should have done that,&rdquo; said
-Una, a little reproachfully, after Lida had gone. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to
-wear your good boots every day now and they&rsquo;ll soon scuff out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care,&rdquo; cried Faith, still in the fine glow of having
-done a kindness to a fellow creature. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t fair that I should
-have two pairs of shoes and poor little Lida Marsh not have any. <i>Now</i> we both
-have a pair. You know perfectly well, Una, that father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that there was no real happiness in getting or having&mdash;only in
-giving. And it&rsquo;s true. I feel <i>far</i> happier now than I ever did in my whole
-life before. Just think of Lida walking home this very minute with her poor
-little feet all nice and warm and comfy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know you haven&rsquo;t another pair of black cashmere
-stockings,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;Your other pair were so full of holes that
-Aunt Martha said she couldn&rsquo;t darn them any more and she cut the legs up
-for stove dusters. You&rsquo;ve nothing but those two pairs of striped
-stockings you hate so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All the glow and uplift went out of Faith. Her gladness collapsed like a
-pricked balloon. She sat for a few dismal minutes in silence, facing the
-consequences of her rash act.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Una, I never thought of that,&rdquo; she said dolefully. &ldquo;I
-didn&rsquo;t stop to think at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The striped stockings were thick, heavy, coarse, ribbed stockings of blue and
-red which Aunt Martha had knit for Faith in the winter. They were undoubtedly
-hideous. Faith loathed them as she had never loathed anything before. Wear them
-she certainly would not. They were still unworn in her bureau drawer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to wear the striped stockings after this,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;Just think how the boys in school will laugh at you. You know how
-they laugh at Mamie Warren for her striped stockings and call her barber pole
-and yours are far worse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear them,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll go
-barefooted first, cold as it is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t go barefooted to church to-morrow. Think what people
-would say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll stay home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t. You know very well Aunt Martha will make you go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did know this. The one thing on which Aunt Martha troubled herself to
-insist was that they must all go to church, rain or shine. How they were
-dressed, or if they were dressed at all, never concerned her. But go they must.
-That was how Aunt Martha had been brought up seventy years ago, and that was
-how she meant to bring them up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t you got a pair you can lend me, Una?&rdquo; said poor
-Faith piteously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una shook her head. &ldquo;No, you know I only have the one black pair. And
-they&rsquo;re so tight I can hardly get them on. They wouldn&rsquo;t go on you.
-Neither would my gray ones. Besides, the legs of <i>them</i> are all darned <i>and</i>
-darned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear those striped stockings,&rdquo; said Faith
-stubbornly. &ldquo;The feel of them is even worse than the looks. They make me
-feel as if my legs were as big as barrels and they&rsquo;re so <i>scratchy</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I don&rsquo;t know what you&rsquo;re going to do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If father was home I&rsquo;d go and ask him to get me a new pair before
-the store closes. But he won&rsquo;t be home till too late. I&rsquo;ll ask him
-Monday&mdash;and I won&rsquo;t go to church tomorrow. I&rsquo;ll pretend
-I&rsquo;m sick and Aunt Martha&rsquo;ll <i>have</i> to let me stay home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That would be acting a lie, Faith,&rdquo; cried Una. &ldquo;You
-<i>can&rsquo;t</i> do that. You know it would be dreadful. What would father say if he
-knew? Don&rsquo;t you remember how he talked to us after mother died and told
-us we must always be <i>true</i>, no matter what else we failed in. He said we must
-never tell or act a lie&mdash;he said he&rsquo;d <i>trust</i> us not to. You
-<i>can&rsquo;t</i> do it, Faith. Just wear the striped stockings. It&rsquo;ll only be
-for once. Nobody will notice them in church. It isn&rsquo;t like school. And
-your new brown dress is so long they won&rsquo;t show much. Wasn&rsquo;t it
-lucky Aunt Martha made it big, so you&rsquo;d have room to grow in it, for all
-you hated it so when she finished it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear those stockings,&rdquo; repeated Faith. She uncoiled
-her bare, white legs from the tombstone and deliberately walked through the
-wet, cold grass to the bank of snow. Setting her teeth, she stepped upon it and
-stood there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you doing?&rdquo; cried Una aghast. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll catch
-your death of cold, Faith Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m trying to,&rdquo; answered Faith. &ldquo;I hope I&rsquo;ll
-catch a fearful cold and be <i>awful</i> sick to-morrow. Then I won&rsquo;t be acting
-a lie. I&rsquo;m going to stand here as long as I can bear it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, Faith, you might really die. You might get pneumonia. Please, Faith
-don&rsquo;t. Let&rsquo;s go into the house and get <i>something</i> for your feet. Oh,
-here&rsquo;s Jerry. I&rsquo;m so thankful. Jerry, <i>make</i> Faith get off that snow.
-Look at her feet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Holy cats! Faith, what <i>are</i> you doing?&rdquo; demanded Jerry. &ldquo;Are
-you crazy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Go away!&rdquo; snapped Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then are you punishing yourself for something? It isn&rsquo;t right, if
-you are. You&rsquo;ll be sick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to be sick. I&rsquo;m not punishing myself. Go away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where&rsquo;s her shoes and stockings?&rdquo; asked Jerry of Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She gave them to Lida Marsh.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Lida Marsh? What for?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because Lida had none&mdash;and her feet were so cold. And now she wants
-to be sick so that she won&rsquo;t have to go to church to-morrow and wear her
-striped stockings. But, Jerry, she may die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith,&rdquo; said Jerry, &ldquo;get off that ice-bank or I&rsquo;ll
-pull you off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pull away,&rdquo; dared Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry sprang at her and caught her arms. He pulled one way and Faith pulled
-another. Una ran behind Faith and pushed. Faith stormed at Jerry to leave her
-alone. Jerry stormed back at her not to be a dizzy idiot; and Una cried. They
-made no end of noise and they were close to the road fence of the graveyard.
-Henry Warren and his wife drove by and heard and saw them. Very soon the Glen
-heard that the manse children had been having an awful fight in the graveyard
-and using most improper language. Meanwhile, Faith had allowed herself to be
-pulled off the ice because her feet were aching so sharply that she was ready
-to get off any way. They all went in amiably and went to bed. Faith slept like
-a cherub and woke in the morning without a trace of a cold. She felt that she
-couldn&rsquo;t feign sickness and act a lie, after remembering that long-ago
-talk with her father. But she was still as fully determined as ever that she
-would not wear those abominable stockings to church.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap25"></a>CHAPTER XXV.<br />
-ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER &ldquo;EXPLANATION&rdquo;</h2>
-
-<p>
-Faith went early to Sunday School and was seated in the corner of her class pew
-before any one came. Therefore, the dreadful truth did not burst upon any one
-until Faith left the class pew near the door to walk up to the manse pew after
-Sunday School. The church was already half filled and all who were sitting near
-the aisle saw that the minister&rsquo;s daughter had boots on but no stockings!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s new brown dress, which Aunt Martha had made from an ancient
-pattern, was absurdly long for her, but even so it did not meet her boot-tops.
-Two good inches of bare white leg showed plainly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Carl sat alone in the manse pew. Jerry had gone into the gallery to
-sit with a chum and the Blythe girls had taken Una with them. The Meredith
-children were given to &ldquo;sitting all over the church&rdquo; in this
-fashion and a great many people thought it very improper. The gallery
-especially, where irresponsible lads congregated and were known to whisper and
-suspected of chewing tobacco during service, was no place, for a son of the
-manse. But Jerry hated the manse pew at the very top of the church, under the
-eyes of Elder Clow and his family. He escaped from it whenever he could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, absorbed in watching a spider spinning its web at the window, did not
-notice Faith&rsquo;s legs. She walked home with her father after church and he
-never noticed them. She got on the hated striped stockings before Jerry and Una
-arrived, so that for the time being none of the occupants of the manse knew
-what she had done. But nobody else in Glen St. Mary was ignorant of it. The few
-who had not seen soon heard. Nothing else was talked of on the way home from
-church. Mrs. Alec Davis said it was only what she expected, and the next thing
-you would see some of those young ones coming to church with no clothes on at
-all. The president of the Ladies&rsquo; Aid decided that she would bring the
-matter up at the next Aid meeting, and suggest that they wait in a body on the
-minister and protest. Miss Cornelia said that she, for her part, gave up. There
-was no use worrying over the manse fry any longer. Even Mrs. Dr. Blythe felt a
-little shocked, though she attributed the occurrence solely to Faith&rsquo;s
-forgetfulness. Susan could not immediately begin knitting stockings for Faith
-because it was Sunday, but she had one set up before any one else was out of
-bed at Ingleside the next morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You need not tell me anything but that it was old Martha&rsquo;s fault,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo; she told Anne. &ldquo;I suppose that poor little child
-had no decent stockings to wear. I suppose every stocking she had was in holes,
-as you know very well they generally are. And <i>I</i> think, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-that the Ladies&rsquo; Aid would be better employed in knitting some for them
-than in fighting over the new carpet for the pulpit platform. <i>I</i> am not a
-Ladies&rsquo; Aider, but I shall knit Faith two pairs of stockings, out of this
-nice black yarn, as fast as my fingers can move and that you may tie to. Never
-shall I forget my sensations, Mrs. Dr. dear, when I saw a minister&rsquo;s
-child walking up the aisle of our church with no stockings on. I really did not
-know what way to look.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And the church was just full of Methodists yesterday, too,&rdquo;
-groaned Miss Cornelia, who had come up to the Glen to do some shopping and run
-into Ingleside to talk the affair over. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how it is,
-but just as sure as those manse children do something especially awful the
-church is sure to be crowded with Methodists. I thought Mrs. Deacon
-Hazard&rsquo;s eyes would drop out of her head. When she came out of church she
-said, &lsquo;Well, that exhibition was no more than decent. I do pity the
-Presbyterians.&rsquo; And we just had to <i>take</i> it. There was nothing one could
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There was something <i>I</i> could have said, Mrs. Dr. dear, if I had
-heard her,&rdquo; said Susan grimly. &ldquo;I would have said, for one thing,
-that in my opinion clean bare legs were quite as decent as holes. And I would
-have said, for another, that the Presbyterians did not feel greatly in need of
-pity seeing that they had a minister who could <i>preach</i> and the Methodists had
-<i>not</i>. I could have squelched Mrs. Deacon Hazard, Mrs. Dr dear, and that you may
-tie to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish Mr. Meredith didn&rsquo;t preach quite so well and looked after
-his family a little better,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;He could at
-least glance over his children before they went to church and see that they
-were quite properly clothed. I&rsquo;m tired making excuses for him, believe
-<i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile, Faith&rsquo;s soul was being harrowed up in Rainbow Valley. Mary
-Vance was there and, as usual, in a lecturing mood. She gave Faith to
-understand that she had disgraced herself and her father beyond redemption and
-that she, Mary Vance, was done with her. &ldquo;Everybody&rdquo; was talking,
-and &ldquo;everybody&rdquo; said the same thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I simply feel that I can&rsquo;t associate with you any longer,&rdquo;
-she concluded.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>We</i> are going to associate with her then,&rdquo; cried Nan Blythe. Nan
-secretly thought Faith <i>had</i> done a awful thing, but she wasn&rsquo;t going to
-let Mary Vance run matters in this high-handed fashion. &ldquo;And if <i>you</i> are
-not you needn&rsquo;t come any more to Rainbow Valley, <i>Miss</i> Vance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan and Di both put their arms around Faith and glared defiance at Mary. The
-latter suddenly crumpled up, sat down on a stump and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It ain&rsquo;t that I don&rsquo;t want to,&rdquo; she wailed. &ldquo;But
-if I keep in with Faith people&rsquo;ll be saying I put her up to doing things.
-Some are saying it now, true&rsquo;s you live. I can&rsquo;t afford to have
-such things said of me, now that I&rsquo;m in a respectable place and trying to
-be a lady. And <i>I</i> never went bare-legged in church in my toughest days.
-I&rsquo;d never have thought of doing such a thing. But that hateful old Kitty
-Alec says Faith has never been the same girl since that time I stayed in the
-manse. She says Cornelia Elliott will live to rue the day she took me in. It
-hurts my feelings, I tell you. But it&rsquo;s Mr. Meredith I&rsquo;m really
-worried over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you needn&rsquo;t worry about him,&rdquo; said Di scornfully.
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t likely necessary. Now, Faith darling, stop crying and
-tell us why you did it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith explained tearfully. The Blythe girls sympathized with her, and even Mary
-Vance agreed that it was a hard position to be in. But Jerry, on whom the thing
-came like a thunderbolt, refused to be placated. So <i>this</i> was what some
-mysterious hints he had got in school that day meant! He marched Faith and Una
-home without ceremony, and the Good-Conduct Club held an immediate session in
-the graveyard to sit in judgment on Faith&rsquo;s case.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see that it was any harm,&rdquo; said Faith defiantly.
-&ldquo;Not <i>much</i> of my legs showed. It wasn&rsquo;t <i>wrong</i> and it didn&rsquo;t
-hurt anybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will hurt Dad. You <i>know</i> it will. You know people blame him whenever
-we do anything queer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t think of that,&rdquo; muttered Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s just the trouble. You didn&rsquo;t think and you <i>should</i>
-have thought. That&rsquo;s what our Club is for&mdash;to bring us up and <i>make</i>
-us think. We promised we&rsquo;d always stop and think before doing things. You
-didn&rsquo;t and you&rsquo;ve got to be punished, Faith&mdash;and real hard,
-too. You&rsquo;ll wear those striped stockings to school for a week for
-punishment.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Jerry, won&rsquo;t a day do&mdash;two days? Not a whole week!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, a whole week,&rdquo; said inexorable Jerry. &ldquo;It is
-fair&mdash;ask Jem Blythe if it isn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith felt she would rather submit then ask Jem Blythe about such a matter. She
-was beginning to realize that her offence was a quite shameful one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll do it, then,&rdquo; she muttered, a little sulkily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;re getting off easy,&rdquo; said, Jerry severely. &ldquo;And
-no matter how we punish you it won&rsquo;t help father. People will always
-think you just did it for mischief, and they&rsquo;ll blame father for not
-stopping it. We can never explain it to everybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This aspect of the case weighed on Faith&rsquo;s mind. Her own condemnation she
-could bear, but it tortured her that her father should be blamed. If people
-knew the true facts of the case they would not blame him. But how could she
-make them known to all the world? Getting up in church, as she had once done,
-and explaining the matter was out of the question. Faith had heard from Mary
-Vance how the congregation had looked upon that performance and realized that
-she must not repeat it. Faith worried over the problem for half a week. Then
-she had an inspiration and promptly acted upon it. She spent that evening in
-the garret, with a lamp and an exercise book, writing busily, with flushed
-cheeks and shining eyes. It was the very thing! How clever she was to have
-thought of it! It would put everything right and explain everything and yet
-cause no scandal. It was eleven o&rsquo;clock when she had finished to her
-satisfaction and crept down to bed, dreadfully tired, but perfectly happy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a few days the little weekly published in the Glen under the name of <i>The
-Journal</i> came out as usual, and the Glen had another sensation. A letter
-signed &ldquo;Faith Meredith&rdquo; occupied a prominent place on the front
-page and ran as follows:&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;T<small>O WHOM IT MAY CONCERN</small>:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to explain to everybody how it was I came to go to church without
-stockings on, so that everybody will know that father was not to blame one bit
-for it, and the old gossips need not say he is, because it is not true. I gave
-my only pair of black stockings to Lida Marsh, because she hadn&rsquo;t any and
-her poor little feet were awful cold and I was so sorry for her. No child ought
-to have to go without shoes and stockings in a Christian community before the
-snow is all gone, and I think the W. F. M. S. ought to have given her
-stockings. Of course, I know they are sending things to the little heathen
-children, and that is all right and a kind thing to do. But the little heathen
-children have lots more warm weather than we have, and I think the women of our
-church ought to look after Lida and not leave it all to me. When I gave her my
-stockings I forgot they were the only black pair I had without holes, but I am
-glad I did give them to her, because my conscience would have been
-uncomfortable if I hadn&rsquo;t. When she had gone away, looking so proud and
-happy, the poor little thing, I remembered that all I had to wear were the
-horrid red and blue things Aunt Martha knit last winter for me out of some yarn
-that Mrs. Joseph Burr of Upper Glen sent us. It was dreadfully coarse yarn and
-all knots, and I never saw any of Mrs. Burr&rsquo;s own children wearing things
-made of such yarn. But Mary Vance says Mrs. Burr gives the minister stuff that
-she can&rsquo;t use or eat herself, and thinks it ought to go as part of the
-salary her husband signed to pay, but never does.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I just couldn&rsquo;t bear to wear those hateful stockings. They were so
-ugly and rough and felt so scratchy. Everybody would have made fun of me. I
-thought at first I&rsquo;d pretend to be sick and not go to church next day,
-but I decided I couldn&rsquo;t do that, because it would be acting a lie, and
-father told us after mother died that was something we must never, never do. It
-is just as bad to act a lie as to tell one, though I know some people, right
-here in the Glen, who act them, and never seem to feel a bit bad about it. I
-will not mention any names, but I know who they are and so does father.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I tried my best to catch cold and really be sick by standing on the
-snowbank in the Methodist graveyard with my bare feet until Jerry pulled me
-off. But it didn&rsquo;t hurt me a bit and so I couldn&rsquo;t get out of going
-to church. So I just decided I would put my boots on and go that way. I
-can&rsquo;t see why it was so wrong and I was so careful to wash my legs just
-as clean as my face, but, anyway, father wasn&rsquo;t to blame for it. He was
-in the study thinking of his sermon and other heavenly things, and I kept out
-of his way before I went to Sunday School. Father does not look at
-people&rsquo;s legs in church, so of course he did not notice mine, but all the
-gossips did and talked about it, and that is why I am writing this letter to
-the <i>Journal</i> to explain. I suppose I did very wrong, since everybody says
-so, and I am sorry and I am wearing those awful stockings to punish myself,
-although father bought me two nice new black pairs as soon as Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s
-store opened on Monday morning. But it was all my fault, and if people blame
-father for it after they read this they are not Christians and so I do not mind
-what they say.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is another thing I want to explain about before I stop. Mary Vance
-told me that Mr. Evan Boyd is blaming the Lew Baxters for stealing potatoes out
-of his field last fall. They did not touch his potatoes. They are very poor,
-but they are honest. It was us did it&mdash;Jerry and Carl and I. Una was not
-with us at the time. We never thought it was stealing. We just wanted a few
-potatoes to cook over a fire in Rainbow Valley one evening to eat with our
-fried trout. Mr. Boyd&rsquo;s field was the nearest, just between the valley
-and the village, so we climbed over his fence and pulled up some stalks. The
-potatoes were awful small, because Mr. Boyd did not put enough fertilizer on
-them and we had to pull up a lot of stalks before we got enough, and then they
-were not much bigger than marbles. Walter and Di Blythe helped us eat them, but
-they did not come along until we had them cooked and did not know where we got
-them, so they were not to blame at all, only us. We didn&rsquo;t mean any harm,
-but if it was stealing we are very sorry and we will pay Mr. Boyd for them if
-he will wait until we grow up. We never have any money now because we are not
-big enough to earn any, and Aunt Martha says it takes every cent of poor
-father&rsquo;s salary, even when it is paid up regularly&mdash;and it
-isn&rsquo;t often&mdash;to run this house. But Mr. Boyd must not blame the Lew
-Baxters any more, when they were quite innocent, and give them a bad name.
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&ldquo;Yours respectfully,<br />
-&ldquo;F<small>AITH</small> M<small>EREDITH</small>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap26"></a>CHAPTER XXVI.<br />
-MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Susan, after I&rsquo;m dead I&rsquo;m going to come back to earth every
-time when the daffodils blow in this garden,&rdquo; said Anne rapturously.
-&ldquo;Nobody may see me, but I&rsquo;ll be here. If anybody is in the garden
-at the time&mdash;I <i>think</i> I&rsquo;ll come on an evening just like this, but it
-<i>might</i> be just at dawn&mdash;a lovely, pale-pinky spring
-dawn&mdash;they&rsquo;ll just see the daffodils nodding wildly as if an extra
-gust of wind had blown past them, but it will be <i>I</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed, Mrs. Dr. dear, you will not be thinking of flaunting worldly
-things like daffies after you are dead,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;And I do <i>not</i>
-believe in ghosts, seen or unseen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Susan, I shall not be a ghost! That has such a horrible sound. I
-shall just be <i>me</i>. And I shall run around in the twilight, whether it is morn or
-eve, and see all the spots I love. Do you remember how badly I felt when I left
-our little House of Dreams, Susan? I thought I could never love Ingleside so
-well. But I do. I love every inch of the ground and every stick and stone on
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am rather fond of the place myself,&rdquo; said Susan, who would have
-died if she had been removed from it, &ldquo;but we must not set our affections
-too much on earthly things, Mrs. Dr. dear. There are such things as fires and
-earthquakes. We should always be prepared. The Tom MacAllisters over-harbour
-were burned out three nights ago. Some say Tom MacAllister set the house on
-fire himself to get the insurance. That may or may not be. But I advise the
-doctor to have our chimneys seen to at once. An ounce of prevention is worth a
-pound of cure. But I see Mrs. Marshall Elliott coming in at the gate, looking
-as if she had been sent for and couldn&rsquo;t go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne dearie, have you seen the <i>Journal</i> to-day?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s voice was trembling, partly from emotion, partly from the
-fact that she had hurried up from the store too fast and lost her breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne bent over the daffodils to hide a smile. She and Gilbert had laughed
-heartily and heartlessly over the front page of the <i>Journal</i> that day,
-but she knew that to dear Miss Cornelia it was almost a tragedy, and she must
-not wound her feelings by any display of levity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it dreadful? What <i>is</i> to be done?&rdquo; asked Miss Cornelia
-despairingly. Miss Cornelia had vowed that she was done with worrying over the
-pranks of the manse children, but she went on worrying just the same.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne led the way to the veranda, where Susan was knitting, with Shirley and
-Rilla conning their primers on either side. Susan was already on her second
-pair of stockings for Faith. Susan never worried over poor humanity. She did
-what in her lay for its betterment and serenely left the rest to the Higher
-Powers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cornelia Elliott thinks she was born to run this world, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; she had once said to Anne, &ldquo;and so she is always in a stew
-over something. I have never thought <i>I</i> was, and so I go calmly along.
-Not but what it has sometimes occurred to me that things might be run a little
-better than they are. But it is not for us poor worms to nourish such thoughts.
-They only make us uncomfortable and do not get us anywhere.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see that anything can be done&mdash;now&mdash;&rdquo; said
-Anne, pulling out a nice, cushiony chair for Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But how in
-the world did Mr. Vickers allow that letter to be printed? Surely he should
-have known better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, he&rsquo;s away, Anne dearie&mdash;he&rsquo;s been away to New
-Brunswick for a week. And that young scalawag of a Joe Vickers is editing the
-<i>Journal</i> in his absence. Of course, Mr. Vickers would never have put it
-in, even if he is a Methodist, but Joe would just think it a good joke. As you
-say, I don&rsquo;t suppose there is anything to be done now, only live it down.
-But if I ever get Joe Vickers cornered somewhere I&rsquo;ll give him a talking
-to he won&rsquo;t forget in a hurry. I wanted Marshall to stop our subscription
-to the <i>Journal</i> instantly, but he only laughed and said that
-to-day&rsquo;s issue was the only one that had had anything readable in it for
-a year. Marshall never will take anything seriously&mdash;just like a man.
-Fortunately, Evan Boyd is like that, too. He takes it as a joke and is laughing
-all over the place about it. And he&rsquo;s another Methodist! As for Mrs. Burr
-of Upper Glen, of course she will be furious and they will leave the church.
-Not that it will be a great loss from any point of view. The Methodists are
-quite welcome to <i>them</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It serves Mrs. Burr right,&rdquo; said Susan, who had an old feud with
-the lady in question and had been hugely tickled over the reference to her in
-Faith&rsquo;s letter. &ldquo;She will find that she will not be able to cheat
-the Methodist parson out of <i>his</i> salary with bad yarn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of it is, there&rsquo;s not much hope of things getting any
-better,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia gloomily. &ldquo;As long as Mr. Meredith was
-going to see Rosemary West I did hope the manse would soon have a proper
-mistress. But that is all off. I suppose she wouldn&rsquo;t have him on account
-of the children&mdash;at least, everybody seems to think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not believe that he ever asked her,&rdquo; said Susan, who could
-not conceive of any one refusing a minister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, nobody knows anything about <i>that</i>. But one thing is certain, he
-doesn&rsquo;t go there any longer. And Rosemary didn&rsquo;t look well all the
-spring. I hope her visit to Kingsport will do her good. She&rsquo;s been gone
-for a month and will stay another month, I understand. I can&rsquo;t remember
-when Rosemary was away from home before. She and Ellen could never bear to be
-parted. But I understand Ellen insisted on her going this time. And meanwhile
-Ellen and Norman Douglas are warming up the old soup.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is that really so?&rdquo; asked Anne, laughing. &ldquo;I heard a rumour
-of it, but I hardly believed it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Believe it! You may believe it all right, Anne, dearie. Nobody is in
-ignorance of it. Norman Douglas never left anybody in doubt as to his
-intentions in regard to anything. He always did his courting before the public.
-He told Marshall that he hadn&rsquo;t thought about Ellen for years, but the
-first time he went to church last fall he saw her and fell in love with her all
-over again. He said he&rsquo;d clean forgot how handsome she was. He
-hadn&rsquo;t seen her for twenty years, if you can believe it. Of course he
-never went to church, and Ellen never went anywhere else round here. Oh, we all
-know what Norman means, but what Ellen means is a different matter. I
-shan&rsquo;t take it upon me to predict whether it will be a match or
-not.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He jilted her once&mdash;but it seems that does not count with some
-people, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; Susan remarked rather acidly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He jilted her in a fit of temper and repented it all his life,&rdquo;
-said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;That is different from a cold-blooded jilting. For
-my part, I never detested Norman as some folks do. He could never over-crow <i>me</i>.
-I <i>do</i> wonder what started him coming to church. I have never been able to
-believe Mrs. Wilsons&rsquo;s story that Faith Meredith went there and bullied
-him into it. I&rsquo;ve always intended to ask Faith herself, but I&rsquo;ve
-never happened to think of it just when I saw her. What influence could <i>she</i>
-have over Norman Douglas? He was in the store when I left, bellowing with
-laughter over that scandalous letter. You could have heard him at Four Winds
-Point. &lsquo;The greatest girl in the world,&rsquo; he was shouting.
-&lsquo;She&rsquo;s that full of spunk she&rsquo;s bursting with it. And all the
-old grannies want to tame her, darn them. But they&rsquo;ll never be able to do
-it&mdash;never! They might as well try to drown a fish. Boyd, see that you put
-more fertilizer on your potatoes next year. Ho, ho, ho!&rsquo; And then he
-laughed till the roof shook.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Douglas pays well to the salary, at least,&rdquo; remarked Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Norman isn&rsquo;t mean in some ways. He&rsquo;d give a thousand
-without blinking a lash, and roar like a Bull of Bashan if he had to pay five
-cents too much for anything. Besides, he likes Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s sermons,
-and Norman Douglas was always willing to shell out if he got his brains tickled
-up. There is no more Christianity about him than there is about a black, naked
-heathen in Africa and never will be. But he&rsquo;s clever and well read and he
-judges sermons as he would lectures. Anyhow, it&rsquo;s well he backs up Mr.
-Meredith and the children as he does, for they&rsquo;ll need friends more than
-ever after this. I am tired of making excuses for them, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know, dear Miss Cornelia,&rdquo; said Anne seriously, &ldquo;I
-think we have all been making too many excuses. It is very foolish and we ought
-to stop it. I am going to tell you what I&rsquo;d <i>like</i> to do. I shan&rsquo;t do
-it, of course&rdquo;&mdash;Anne had noted a glint of alarm in Susan&rsquo;s
-eye&mdash;&ldquo;it would be too unconventional, and we must be conventional or
-die, after we reach what is supposed to be a dignified age. But I&rsquo;d <i>like</i>
-to do it. I&rsquo;d like to call a meeting of the Ladies Aid and W.M.S. and the
-Girls Sewing Society, and include in the audience all and any Methodists who
-have been criticizing the Merediths&mdash;although I do think if we
-Presbyterians stopped criticizing and excusing we would find that other
-denominations would trouble themselves very little about our manse folks. I
-would say to them, &lsquo;Dear Christian friends&rsquo;&mdash;with marked
-emphasis on &lsquo;Christian&rsquo;&mdash;I have something to say to you and I
-want to say it good and hard, that you may take it home and repeat it to your
-families. You Methodists need not pity us, and we Presbyterians need not pity
-ourselves. We are not going to do it any more. And we are going to say, boldly
-and truthfully, to all critics and sympathizers, &lsquo;We are <i>proud</i> of our
-minister and his family. Mr. Meredith is the best preacher Glen St. Mary church
-ever had. Moreover, he is a sincere, earnest teacher of truth and Christian
-charity. He is a faithful friend, a judicious pastor in all essentials, and a
-refined, scholarly, well-bred man. His family are worthy of him. Gerald
-Meredith is the cleverest pupil in the Glen school, and Mr. Hazard says that he
-is destined to a brilliant career. He is a manly, honourable, truthful little
-fellow. Faith Meredith is a beauty, and as inspiring and original as she is
-beautiful. There is nothing commonplace about her. All the other girls in the
-Glen put together haven&rsquo;t the vim, and wit, and joyousness and
-&lsquo;spunk&rsquo; she has. She has not an enemy in the world. Every one who
-knows her loves her. Of how many, children or grown-ups, can that be said? Una
-Meredith is sweetness personified. She will make a most lovable woman. Carl
-Meredith, with his love for ants and frogs and spiders, will some day be a
-naturalist whom all Canada&mdash;nay, all the world, will delight to honour. Do
-you know of any other family in the Glen, or out of it, of whom all these
-things can be said? Away with shamefaced excuses and apologies. We <i>rejoice</i> in
-our minister and his splendid boys and girls!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne stopped, partly because she was out of breath after her vehement speech
-and partly because she could not trust herself to speak further in view of Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s face. That good lady was staring helplessly at Anne,
-apparently engulfed in billows of new ideas. But she came up with a gasp and
-struck out for shore gallantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne Blythe, I wish you <i>would</i> call that meeting and say just that!
-You&rsquo;ve made me ashamed of myself, for one, and far be it from me to
-refuse to admit it. <i>Of course</i>, that is how we should have
-talked&mdash;especially to the Methodists. And it&rsquo;s every word of it
-true&mdash;every word. We&rsquo;ve just been shutting our eyes to the big
-worth-while things and squinting them on the little things that don&rsquo;t
-really matter a pin&rsquo;s worth. Oh, Anne dearie, I can see a thing when
-it&rsquo;s hammered into my head. No more apologizing for Cornelia Marshall!
-<i>I</i> shall hold <i>my</i> head up after this, believe <i>me</i>&mdash;though I <i>may</i> talk
-things over with you as usual just to relieve my feelings if the Merediths do
-any more startling stunts. Even that letter I felt so bad about&mdash;why,
-it&rsquo;s only a good joke after all, as Norman says. Not many girls would
-have been cute enough to think of writing it&mdash;and all punctuated so nicely
-and not one word misspelled. Just let me hear any Methodist say one word about
-it&mdash;though all the same I&rsquo;ll never forgive Joe Vickers&mdash;believe
-<i>me!</i> Where are the rest of your small fry to-night?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Walter and the twins are in Rainbow Valley. Jem is studying in the
-garret.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They are all crazy about Rainbow Valley. Mary Vance thinks it&rsquo;s
-the only place in the world. She&rsquo;d be off up here every evening if
-I&rsquo;d let her. But I don&rsquo;t encourage her in gadding. Besides, I miss
-the creature when she isn&rsquo;t around, Anne dearie. I never thought
-I&rsquo;d get so fond of her. Not but what I see her faults and try to correct
-them. But she has never said one saucy word to me since she came to my house
-and she is a <i>great</i> help&mdash;for when all is said and done, Anne dearie, I am
-not so young as I once was, and there is no sense denying it. I was fifty-nine
-my last birthday. I don&rsquo;t <i>feel</i> it, but there is no gainsaying the Family
-Bible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap27"></a>CHAPTER XXVII.<br />
-A SACRED CONCERT</h2>
-
-<p>
-In spite of Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s new point of view she could not help feeling
-a little disturbed over the next performance of the manse children. In public
-she carried off the situation splendidly, saying to all the gossips the
-substance of what Anne had said in daffodil time, and saying it so pointedly
-and forcibly that her hearers found themselves feeling rather foolish and began
-to think that, after all, they were making too much of a childish prank. But in
-private Miss Cornelia allowed herself the relief of bemoaning it to Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne dearie, they had a <i>concert in the graveyard</i> last Thursday evening,
-while the Methodist prayer meeting was going on. There they sat, on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, and sang for a solid hour. Of course, I understand
-it was mostly hymns they sang, and it wouldn&rsquo;t have been quite so bad if
-they&rsquo;d done nothing else. But I&rsquo;m told they finished up with
-<i>Polly Wolly Doodle</i> at full length&mdash;and that just when Deacon Baxter
-was praying.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was there that night,&rdquo; said Susan, &ldquo;and, although I did
-not say anything about it to you, Mrs. Dr. dear, I could not help thinking that
-it was a great pity they picked that particular evening. It was truly
-blood-curdling to hear them sitting there in that abode of the dead, shouting
-that frivolous song at the tops of their lungs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what <i>you</i> were doing in a Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia acidly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have never found that Methodism was catching,&rdquo; retorted Susan
-stiffly. &ldquo;And, as I was going to say when I was interrupted, badly as I
-felt, I did <i>not</i> give in to the Methodists. When Mrs. Deacon Baxter said, as we
-came out, &lsquo;What a disgraceful exhibition!&rsquo; <i>I</i> said, looking
-her fairly in the eye, &lsquo;They are all beautiful singers, and none of <i>your</i>
-choir, Mrs. Baxter, ever bother themselves coming out to your prayer meeting,
-it seems. Their voices appear to be in tune only on Sundays!&rsquo; She was
-quite meek and I felt that I had snubbed her properly. But I could have done it
-much more thoroughly, Mrs. Dr. dear, if only they had left out <i>Polly Wolly
-Doodle</i>. It is truly terrible to think of that being sung in a
-graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Some of those dead folks sang <i>Polly Wolly Doodle</i> when they were
-living, Susan. Perhaps they like to hear it yet,&rdquo; suggested Gilbert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia looked at him reproachfully and made up her mind that, on some
-future occasion, she would hint to Anne that the doctor should be admonished
-not to say such things. They might injure his practice. People might get it
-into their heads that he wasn&rsquo;t orthodox. To be sure, Marshall said even
-worse things habitually, but then <i>he</i> was not a public man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I understand that their father was in his study all the time, with his
-windows open, but never noticed them at all. Of course, he was lost in a book
-as usual. But I spoke to him about it yesterday, when he called.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How could you dare, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?&rdquo; asked Susan
-rebukingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dare! It&rsquo;s time somebody dared something. Why, they say he knows
-nothing about that letter of Faith&rsquo;s to the <i>journal</i> because nobody liked
-to mention it to him. He never looks at a <i>journal</i> of course. But I thought he
-ought to know of this to prevent any such performances in future. He said he
-would &lsquo;discuss it with them.&rsquo; But of course he&rsquo;d never think
-of it again after he got out of our gate. That man has no sense of humour,
-Anne, believe <i>me</i>. He preached last Sunday on &lsquo;How to Bring up
-Children.&rsquo; A beautiful sermon it was, too&mdash;and everybody in church
-thinking &lsquo;what a pity you can&rsquo;t practise what you
-preach.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia did Mr. Meredith an injustice in thinking he would soon forget
-what she had told him. He went home much disturbed and when the children came
-from Rainbow Valley that night, at a much later hour than they should have been
-prowling in it, he called them into his study.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They went in, somewhat awed. It was such an unusual thing for their father to
-do. What could he be going to say to them? They racked their memories for any
-recent transgression of sufficient importance, but could not recall any. Carl
-had spilled a saucerful of jam on Mrs. Peter Flagg&rsquo;s silk dress two
-evenings before, when, at Aunt Martha&rsquo;s invitation, she had stayed to
-supper. But Mr. Meredith had not noticed it, and Mrs. Flagg, who was a kindly
-soul, had made no fuss. Besides, Carl had been punished by having to wear
-Una&rsquo;s dress all the rest of the evening.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una suddenly thought that perhaps her father meant to tell them that he was
-going to marry Miss West. Her heart began to beat violently and her legs
-trembled. Then she saw that Mr. Meredith looked very stern and sorrowful. No,
-it could not be that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, &ldquo;I have heard something that
-has pained me very much. Is it true that you sat out in the graveyard all last
-Thursday evening and sang ribald songs while a prayer meeting was being held in
-the Methodist church?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great Caesar, Dad, we forgot all about it being their prayer meeting
-night,&rdquo; exclaimed Jerry in dismay.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then it is true&mdash;you did do this thing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Dad, I don&rsquo;t know what you mean by ribald songs. We sang
-hymns&mdash;it was a sacred concert, you know. What harm was that? I tell you
-we never thought about it&rsquo;s being Methodist prayer meeting night. They
-used to have their meeting Tuesday nights and since they&rsquo;ve changed to
-Thursdays it&rsquo;s hard to remember.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you sing nothing but hymns?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why,&rdquo; said Jerry, turning red, &ldquo;we <i>did</i> sing <i>Polly Wolly
-Doodle</i> at the last. Faith said, &lsquo;Let&rsquo;s have something cheerful
-to wind up with.&rsquo; But we didn&rsquo;t mean any harm, Father&mdash;truly
-we didn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The concert was my idea, Father,&rdquo; said Faith, afraid that Mr.
-Meredith might blame Jerry too much. &ldquo;You know the Methodists themselves
-had a sacred concert in their church three Sunday nights ago. I thought it
-would be good fun to get one up in imitation of it. Only they had prayers at
-theirs, and we left that part out, because we heard that people thought it
-awful for us to pray in a graveyard. <i>You</i> were sitting in here all the
-time,&rdquo; she added, &ldquo;and never said a word to us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not notice what you were doing. That is no excuse for me, of
-course. I am more to blame than you&mdash;I realize that. But why did you sing
-that foolish song at the end?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t think,&rdquo; muttered Jerry, feeling that it was a very
-lame excuse, seeing that he had lectured Faith so strongly in the Good-Conduct
-Club sessions for her lack of thought. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re sorry,
-Father&mdash;truly, we are. Pitch into us hard&mdash;we deserve a regular
-combing down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Mr. Meredith did no combing down or pitching into. He sat down and gathered
-his small culprits close to him and talked a little to them, tenderly and
-wisely. They were overcome with remorse and shame, and felt that they could
-never be so silly and thoughtless again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve just got to punish ourselves good and hard for this,&rdquo;
-whispered Jerry as they crept upstairs. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have a session of
-the Club first thing tomorrow and decide how we&rsquo;ll do it. I never saw
-father so cut up. But I wish to goodness the Methodists would stick to one
-night for their prayer meeting and not wander all over the week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anyhow, I&rsquo;m glad it wasn&rsquo;t what I was afraid it was,&rdquo;
-murmured Una to herself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Behind them, in the study, Mr. Meredith had sat down at his desk and buried his
-face in his arms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God help me!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m a poor sort of father. Oh,
-Rosemary! If you had only cared!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap28"></a>CHAPTER XXVIII.<br />
-A FAST DAY</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Good-Conduct Club had a special session the next morning before school.
-After various suggestions, it was decided that a fast day would be an
-appropriate punishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t eat a single thing for a whole day,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m kind of curious to see what fasting is like, anyhow. This will
-be a good chance to find out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What day will we choose for it?&rdquo; asked Una, who thought it would
-be quite an easy punishment and rather wondered that Jerry and Faith had not
-devised something harder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s pick Monday,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;We mostly have a
-pretty <i>filling</i> dinner on Sundays, and Mondays meals never amount to much
-anyhow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But that&rsquo;s just the point,&rdquo; exclaimed Jerry. &ldquo;We
-mustn&rsquo;t take the easiest day to fast, but the hardest&mdash;and
-that&rsquo;s Sunday, because, as you say, we mostly have roast beef that day
-instead of cold ditto. It wouldn&rsquo;t be much punishment to fast from ditto.
-Let&rsquo;s take next Sunday. It will be a good day, for father is going to
-exchange for the morning service with the Upper Lowbridge minister. Father will
-be away till evening. If Aunt Martha wonders what&rsquo;s got into us,
-we&rsquo;ll tell her right up that we&rsquo;re fasting for the good of our
-souls, and it is in the Bible and she is not to interfere, and I guess she
-won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha did not. She merely said in her fretful mumbling way, &ldquo;What
-foolishness are you young rips up to now?&rdquo; and thought no more about it.
-Mr. Meredith had gone away early in the morning before any one was up. He went
-without his breakfast, too, but that was, of course, of common occurrence. Half
-of the time he forgot it and there was no one to remind him of it.
-Breakfast&mdash;Aunt Martha&rsquo;s breakfast&mdash;was not a hard meal to
-miss. Even the hungry &ldquo;young rips&rdquo; did not feel it any great
-deprivation to abstain from the &ldquo;lumpy porridge and blue milk&rdquo;
-which had aroused the scorn of Mary Vance. But it was different at dinner time.
-They were furiously hungry then, and the odor of roast beef which pervaded the
-manse, and which was wholly delightful in spite of the fact that the roast beef
-was badly underdone, was almost more than they could stand. In desperation they
-rushed to the graveyard where they couldn&rsquo;t smell it. But Una could not
-keep her eyes from the dining room window, through which the Upper Lowbridge
-minister could be seen, placidly eating.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I could only have just a weeny, teeny piece,&rdquo; she sighed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, you stop that,&rdquo; commanded Jerry. &ldquo;Of course it&rsquo;s
-hard&mdash;but that&rsquo;s the punishment of it. I could eat a graven image
-this very minute, but am I complaining? Let&rsquo;s think of something else.
-We&rsquo;ve just got to rise above our stomachs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At supper time they did not feel the pangs of hunger which they had suffered
-earlier in the day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we&rsquo;re getting used to it,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I
-feel an awfully queer all-gone sort of feeling, but I can&rsquo;t say I&rsquo;m
-hungry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My head is funny,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;It goes round and round
-sometimes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she went gamely to church with the others. If Mr. Meredith had not been so
-wholly wrapped up in and carried away with his subject he might have noticed
-the pale little face and hollow eyes in the manse pew beneath. But he noticed
-nothing and his sermon was something longer than usual. Then, just before he
-gave out the final hymn, Una Meredith tumbled off the seat of the manse pew and
-lay in a dead faint on the floor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Elder Clow was the first to reach her. She caught the thin little body
-from the arms of white-faced, terrified Faith and carried it into the vestry.
-Mr. Meredith forgot the hymn and everything else and rushed madly after her.
-The congregation dismissed itself as best it could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Clow,&rdquo; gasped Faith, &ldquo;is Una dead? Have we killed
-her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with my child?&rdquo; demanded the pale father.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She has just fainted, I think,&rdquo; said Mrs. Clow. &ldquo;Oh,
-here&rsquo;s the doctor, thank goodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Gilbert did not find it a very easy thing to bring Una back to consciousness.
-He worked over her for a long time before her eyes opened. Then he carried her
-over to the manse, followed by Faith, sobbing hysterically in her relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is just hungry, you know&mdash;she didn&rsquo;t eat a thing
-to-day&mdash;none of us did&mdash;we were all fasting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fasting!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, and &ldquo;Fasting?&rdquo; said the
-doctor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;to punish ourselves for singing <i>Polly Wolly</i> in the
-graveyard,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My child, I don&rsquo;t want you to punish yourselves for that,&rdquo;
-said Mr. Meredith in distress. &ldquo;I gave you your little scolding&mdash;and
-you were all penitent&mdash;and I forgave you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but we had to be punished,&rdquo; explained Faith.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s our rule&mdash;in our Good-Conduct Club, you know&mdash;if we
-do anything wrong, or anything that is likely to hurt father in the
-congregation, we <i>have</i> to punish ourselves. We are bringing ourselves up, you
-know, because there is nobody to do it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith groaned, but the doctor got up from Una&rsquo;s side with an air
-of relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then this child simply fainted from lack of food and all she needs is a
-good square meal,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Mrs. Clow, will you be kind enough to
-see she gets it? And I think from Faith&rsquo;s story that they all would be
-the better for something to eat, or we shall have more faintings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we shouldn&rsquo;t have made Una fast,&rdquo; said Faith
-remorsefully. &ldquo;When I think of it, only Jerry and I should have been
-punished. <i>We</i> got up the concert and we were the oldest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I sang <i>Polly Wolly</i> just the same as the rest of you,&rdquo; said
-Una&rsquo;s weak little voice, &ldquo;so I had to be punished, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Clow came with a glass of milk, Faith and Jerry and Carl sneaked off to
-the pantry, and John Meredith went into his study, where he sat in the darkness
-for a long time, alone with his bitter thoughts. So his children were bringing
-themselves up because there was &ldquo;nobody to do it&rdquo;&mdash;struggling
-along amid their little perplexities without a hand to guide or a voice to
-counsel. Faith&rsquo;s innocently uttered phrase rankled in her father&rsquo;s
-mind like a barbed shaft. There was &ldquo;nobody&rdquo; to look after
-them&mdash;to comfort their little souls and care for their little bodies. How
-frail Una had looked, lying there on the vestry sofa in that long faint! How
-thin were her tiny hands, how pallid her little face! She looked as if she
-might slip away from him in a breath&mdash;sweet little Una, of whom Cecilia
-had begged him to take such special care. Since his wife&rsquo;s death he had
-not felt such an agony of dread as when he had hung over his little girl in her
-unconsciousness. He must do something&mdash;but what? Should he ask Elizabeth
-Kirk to marry him? She was a good woman&mdash;she would be kind to his
-children. He might bring himself to do it if it were not for his love for
-Rosemary West. But until he had crushed that out he could not seek another
-woman in marriage. And he could not crush it out&mdash;he had tried and he
-could not. Rosemary had been in church that evening, for the first time since
-her return from Kingsport. He had caught a glimpse of her face in the back of
-the crowded church, just as he had finished his sermon. His heart had given a
-fierce throb. He sat while the choir sang the &ldquo;collection piece,&rdquo;
-with his bent head and tingling pulses. He had not seen her since the evening
-upon which he had asked her to marry him. When he had risen to give out the
-hymn his hands were trembling and his pale face was flushed. Then Una&rsquo;s
-fainting spell had banished everything from his mind for a time. Now, in the
-darkness and solitude of the study it rushed back. Rosemary was the only woman
-in the world for him. It was of no use for him to think of marrying any other.
-He could not commit such a sacrilege even for his children&rsquo;s sake. He
-must take up his burden alone&mdash;he must try to be a better, a more watchful
-father&mdash;he must tell his children not to be afraid to come to him with all
-their little problems. Then he lighted his lamp and took up a bulky new book
-which was setting the theological world by the ears. He would read just one
-chapter to compose his mind. Five minutes later he was lost to the world and
-the troubles of the world.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap29"></a>CHAPTER XXIX.<br />
-A WEIRD TALE</h2>
-
-<p>
-On an early June evening Rainbow Valley was an entirely delightful place and
-the children felt it to be so, as they sat in the open glade where the bells
-rang elfishly on the Tree Lovers, and the White Lady shook her green tresses.
-The wind was laughing and whistling about them like a leal, glad-hearted
-comrade. The young ferns were spicy in the hollow. The wild cherry trees
-scattered over the valley, among the dark firs, were mistily white. The robins
-were whistling over in the maples behind Ingleside. Beyond, on the slopes of
-the Glen, were blossoming orchards, sweet and mystic and wonderful, veiled in
-dusk. It was spring, and young things <i>must</i> be glad in spring. Everybody was
-glad in Rainbow Valley that evening&mdash;until Mary Vance froze their blood
-with the story of Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was not there. Jem spent his evenings now studying for his entrance
-examination in the Ingleside garret. Jerry was down near the pond, trouting.
-Walter had been reading Longfellow&rsquo;s sea poems to the others and they
-were steeped in the beauty and mystery of the ships. Then they talked of what
-they would do when they were grown up&mdash;where they would travel&mdash;the
-far, fair shores they would see. Nan and Di meant to go to Europe. Walter
-longed for the Nile moaning past its Egyptian sands, and a glimpse of the
-sphinx. Faith opined rather dismally that she supposed she would have to be a
-missionary&mdash;old Mrs. Taylor told her she ought to be&mdash;and then she
-would at least see India or China, those mysterious lands of the Orient.
-Carl&rsquo;s heart was set on African jungles. Una said nothing. She thought
-she would just like to stay at home. It was prettier here than anywhere else.
-It would be dreadful when they were all grown up and had to scatter over the
-world. The very idea made Una feel lonesome and homesick. But the others
-dreamed on delightedly until Mary Vance arrived and vanished poesy and dreams
-at one fell swoop.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Laws, but I&rsquo;m out of puff,&rdquo; she exclaimed. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve
-run down that hill like sixty. I got an awful scare up there at the old Bailey
-place.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What frightened you?&rdquo; asked Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I dunno. I was poking about under them lilacs in the old garden, trying
-to see if there was any lilies-of-the-valley out yet. It was dark as a pocket
-there&mdash;and all at once I seen something stirring and rustling round at the
-other side of the garden, in those cherry bushes. It was <i>white</i>. I tell you I
-didn&rsquo;t stop for a second look. I flew over the dyke quicker than quick. I
-was sure it was Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who was Henry Warren?&rdquo; asked Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why should he have a ghost?&rdquo; asked Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Laws, did you never hear the story? And you brought up in the Glen.
-Well, wait a minute till I get by breath all back and I&rsquo;ll tell
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered delightsomely. He loved ghost stories. Their mystery, their
-dramatic climaxes, their eeriness gave him a fearful, exquisite pleasure.
-Longfellow instantly grew tame and commonplace. He threw the book aside and
-stretched himself out, propped upon his elbows to listen whole-heartedly,
-fixing his great luminous eyes on Mary&rsquo;s face. Mary wished he
-wouldn&rsquo;t look at her so. She felt she could make a better job of the
-ghost story if Walter were not looking at her. She could put on several frills
-and invent a few artistic details to enhance the horror. As it was, she had to
-stick to the bare truth&mdash;or what had been told her for the truth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she began, &ldquo;you know old Tom Bailey and his wife used
-to live in that house up there thirty years ago. He was an awful old rip, they
-say, and his wife wasn&rsquo;t much better. They&rsquo;d no children of their
-own, but a sister of old Tom&rsquo;s died and left a little boy&mdash;this
-Henry Warren&mdash;and they took him. He was about twelve when he came to them,
-and kind of undersized and delicate. They say Tom and his wife used him awful
-from the start&mdash;whipped him and starved him. Folks said they wanted him to
-die so&rsquo;s they could get the little bit of money his mother had left for
-him. Henry didn&rsquo;t die right off, but he begun having fits&mdash;epileps,
-they called &lsquo;em&mdash;and he grew up kind of simple, till he was about
-eighteen. His uncle used to thrash him in that garden up there &lsquo;cause it
-was back of the house where no one could see him. But folks could hear, and
-they say it was awful sometimes hearing poor Henry plead with his uncle not to
-kill him. But nobody dared interfere &lsquo;cause old Tom was such a reprobate
-he&rsquo;d have been sure to get square with &lsquo;em some way. He burned the
-barns of a man at Harbour Head who offended him. At last Henry died and his
-uncle and aunt give out he died in one of his fits and that was all anybody
-ever knowed, but everybody said Tom had just up and killed him for keeps at
-last. And it wasn&rsquo;t long till it got around that Henry <i>walked</i>. That old
-garden was <i>ha&rsquo;nted</i>. He was heard there at nights, moaning and crying. Old
-Tom and his wife got out&mdash;went out West and never came back. The place got
-such a bad name nobody&rsquo;d buy or rent it. That&rsquo;s why it&rsquo;s all
-gone to ruin. That was thirty years ago, but Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost
-ha&rsquo;nts it yet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you believe that?&rdquo; asked Nan scornfully. &ldquo;<i>I</i>
-don&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, <i>good</i> people have seen him&mdash;and heard him.&rdquo; retorted
-Mary. &ldquo;They say he appears and grovels on the ground and holds you by the
-legs and gibbers and moans like he did when he was alive. I thought of that as
-soon as I seen that white thing in the bushes and thought if it caught me like
-that and moaned I&rsquo;d drop down dead on the spot. So I cut and run. It
-<i>mightn&rsquo;t</i> have been his ghost, but I wasn&rsquo;t going to take any
-chances with a ha&rsquo;nt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was likely old Mrs. Stimson&rsquo;s white calf,&rdquo; laughed Di.
-&ldquo;It pastures in that garden&mdash;I&rsquo;ve seen it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe so. But <i>I&rsquo;m</i> not going home through the Bailey garden any
-more. Here&rsquo;s Jerry with a big string of trout and it&rsquo;s my turn to
-cook them. Jem and Jerry both say I&rsquo;m the best cook in the Glen. And
-Cornelia told me I could bring up this batch of cookies. I all but dropped them
-when I saw Henry&rsquo;s ghost.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry hooted when he heard the ghost story&mdash;which Mary repeated as she
-fried the fish, touching it up a trifle or so, since Walter had gone to help
-Faith to set the table. It made no impression on Jerry, but Faith and Una and
-Carl had been secretly much frightened, though they would never have given in
-to it. It was all right as long as the others were with them in the valley: but
-when the feast was over and the shadows fell they quaked with remembrance.
-Jerry went up to Ingleside with the Blythes to see Jem about something, and
-Mary Vance went around that way home. So Faith and Una and Carl had to go back
-to the manse alone. They walked very close together and gave the old Bailey
-garden a wide berth. They did not believe that it was haunted, of course, but
-they would not go near it for all that.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap30"></a>CHAPTER XXX.<br />
-THE GHOST ON THE DYKE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Somehow, Faith and Carl and Una could not shake off the hold which the story of
-Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost had taken upon their imaginations. They had never
-believed in ghosts. Ghost tales they had heard a-plenty&mdash;Mary Vance had
-told some far more blood-curdling than this; but those tales were all of places
-and people and spooks far away and unknown. After the first half-awful,
-half-pleasant thrill of awe and terror they thought of them no more. But this
-story came home to them. The old Bailey garden was almost at their very
-door&mdash;almost in their beloved Rainbow Valley. They had passed and repassed
-it constantly; they had hunted for flowers in it; they had made short cuts
-through it when they wished to go straight from the village to the valley. But
-never again! After the night when Mary Vance told them its gruesome tale they
-would not have gone through or near it on pain of death. Death! What was death
-compared to the unearthly possibility of falling into the clutches of Henry
-Warren&rsquo;s grovelling ghost?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One warm July evening the three of them were sitting under the Tree Lovers,
-feeling a little lonely. Nobody else had come near the valley that evening. Jem
-Blythe was away in Charlottetown, writing on his entrance examinations. Jerry
-and Walter Blythe were off for a sail on the harbour with old Captain Crawford.
-Nan and Di and Rilla and Shirley had gone down the harbour road to visit
-Kenneth and Persis Ford, who had come with their parents for a flying visit to
-the little old House of Dreams. Nan had asked Faith to go with them, but Faith
-had declined. She would never have admitted it, but she felt a little secret
-jealousy of Persis Ford, concerning whose wonderful beauty and city glamour she
-had heard a great deal. No, she wasn&rsquo;t going to go down there and play
-second fiddle to anybody. She and Una took their story books to Rainbow Valley
-and read, while Carl investigated bugs along the banks of the brook, and all
-three were happy until they suddenly realized that it was twilight and that the
-old Bailey garden was uncomfortably near by. Carl came and sat down close to
-the girls. They all wished they had gone home a little sooner, but nobody said
-anything.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Great, velvety, purple clouds heaped up in the west and spread over the valley.
-There was no wind and everything was suddenly, strangely, dreadfully still. The
-marsh was full of thousands of fire-flies. Surely some fairy parliament was
-being convened that night. Altogether, Rainbow Valley was not a canny place
-just then.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith looked fearfully up the valley to the old Bailey garden. Then, if
-anybody&rsquo;s blood ever did freeze, Faith Meredith&rsquo;s certainly froze
-at that moment. The eyes of Carl and Una followed her entranced gaze and chills
-began gallopading up and down their spines also. For there, under the big
-tamarack tree on the tumble-down, grass-grown dyke of the Bailey garden, was
-something white&mdash;shapelessly white in the gathering gloom. The three
-Merediths sat and gazed as if turned to stone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&mdash;it&rsquo;s the&mdash;calf,&rdquo; whispered Una at
-last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&mdash;too&mdash;big&mdash;for the calf,&rdquo; whispered
-Faith. Her mouth and lips were so dry she could hardly articulate the words.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly Carl gasped,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s coming here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls gave one last agonized glance. Yes, it was creeping down over the
-dyke, as no calf ever did or could creep. Reason fled before sudden,
-over-mastering panic. For the moment every one of the trio was firmly convinced
-that what they saw was Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost. Carl sprang to his feet and
-bolted blindly. With a simultaneous shriek the girls followed him. Like mad
-creatures they tore up the hill, across the road and into the manse. They had
-left Aunt Martha sewing in the kitchen. She was not there. They rushed to the
-study. It was dark and tenantless. As with one impulse, they swung around and
-made for Ingleside&mdash;but not across Rainbow Valley. Down the hill and
-through the Glen street they flew on the wings of their wild terror, Carl in
-the lead, Una bringing up the rear. Nobody tried to stop them, though everybody
-who saw them wondered what fresh devilment those manse youngsters were up to
-now. But at the gate of Ingleside they ran into Rosemary West, who had just
-been in for a moment to return some borrowed books.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw their ghastly faces and staring eyes. She realized that their poor
-little souls were wrung with some awful and real fear, whatever its cause. She
-caught Carl with one arm and Faith with the other. Una stumbled against her and
-held on desperately.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children, dear, what has happened?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;What has
-frightened you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost,&rdquo; answered Carl, through his chattering
-teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Henry&mdash;Warren&rsquo;s&mdash;ghost!&rdquo; said amazed Rosemary, who
-had never heard the story.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; sobbed Faith hysterically. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there&mdash;on
-the Bailey dyke&mdash;we saw it&mdash;and it started to&mdash;chase us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary herded the three distracted creatures to the Ingleside veranda.
-Gilbert and Anne were both away, having also gone to the House of Dreams, but
-Susan appeared in the doorway, gaunt and practical and unghostlike.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is all this rumpus about?&rdquo; she inquired.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again the children gasped out their awful tale, while Rosemary held them close
-to her and soothed them with wordless comfort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Likely it was an owl,&rdquo; said Susan, unstirred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-An owl! The Meredith children never had any opinion of Susan&rsquo;s
-intelligence after that!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was bigger than a million owls,&rdquo; said Carl, sobbing&mdash;oh,
-how ashamed Carl was of that sobbing in after days&mdash;&ldquo;and it&mdash;it
-<i>grovelled</i> just as Mary said&mdash;and it was crawling down over the dyke to get
-at us. Do owls <i>crawl?</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary looked at Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must have seen something to frighten them so,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will go and see,&rdquo; said Susan coolly. &ldquo;Now, children, calm
-yourselves. Whatever you have seen, it was not a ghost. As for poor Henry
-Warren, I feel sure he would be only too glad to rest quietly in his peaceful
-grave once he got there. No fear of <i>him</i> venturing back, and that you may tie
-to. If you can make them see reason, Miss West, I will find out the truth of
-the matter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan departed for Rainbow Valley, valiantly grasping a pitchfork which she
-found leaning against the back fence where the doctor had been working in his
-little hay-field. A pitchfork might not be of much use against
-&ldquo;ha&rsquo;nts,&rdquo; but it was a comforting sort of weapon. There was
-nothing to be seen in Rainbow Valley when Susan reached it. No white visitants
-appeared to be lurking in the shadowy, tangled old Bailey garden. Susan marched
-boldly through it and beyond it, and rapped with her pitchfork on the door of
-the little cottage on the other side, where Mrs. Stimson lived with her two
-daughters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Back at Ingleside Rosemary had succeeded in calming the children. They still
-sobbed a little from shock, but they were beginning to feel a lurking and
-salutary suspicion that they had made dreadful geese of themselves. This
-suspicion became a certainty when Susan finally returned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have found out what your ghost was,&rdquo; she said, with a grim
-smile, sitting down on a rocker and fanning herself. &ldquo;Old Mrs. Stimson
-has had a pair of factory cotton sheets bleaching in the Bailey garden for a
-week. She spread them on the dyke under the tamarack tree because the grass was
-clean and short there. This evening she went out to take them in. She had her
-knitting in her hands so she hung the sheets over her shoulders by way of
-carrying them. And then she must have dropped one of her needles and find it
-she could not and has not yet. But she went down on her knees and crept about
-to hunt for it, and she was at that when she heard awful yells down in the
-valley and saw the three children tearing up the hill past her. She thought
-they had been bit by something and it gave her poor old heart such a turn that
-she could not move or speak, but just crouched there till they disappeared.
-Then she staggered back home and they have been applying stimulants to her ever
-since, and her heart is in a terrible condition and she says she will not get
-over this fright all summer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Merediths sat, crimson with a shame that even Rosemary&rsquo;s
-understanding sympathy could not remove. They sneaked off home, met Jerry at
-the manse gate and made remorseful confession. A session of the Good-Conduct
-Club was arranged for next morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wasn&rsquo;t Miss West sweet to us to-night?&rdquo; whispered Faith in
-bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; admitted Una. &ldquo;It is such a pity it changes people so
-much to be made stepmothers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it does,&rdquo; said Faith loyally.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap31"></a>CHAPTER XXXI.<br />
-CARL DOES PENANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see why we should be punished at all,&rdquo; said Faith,
-rather sulkily. &ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t do anything wrong. We couldn&rsquo;t
-help being frightened. And it won&rsquo;t do father any harm. It was just an
-accident.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You were cowards,&rdquo; said Jerry with judicial scorn, &ldquo;and you
-gave way to your cowardice. That is why you should be punished. Everybody will
-laugh at you about this, and that is a disgrace to the family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you knew how awful the whole thing was,&rdquo; said Faith with a
-shiver, &ldquo;you would think we had been punished enough already. I
-wouldn&rsquo;t go through it again for anything in the whole world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you&rsquo;d have run yourself if you&rsquo;d been
-there,&rdquo; muttered Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;From an old woman in a cotton sheet,&rdquo; mocked Jerry. &ldquo;Ho, ho,
-ho!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It didn&rsquo;t look a bit like an old woman,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-&ldquo;It was just a great, big, white thing crawling about in the grass just
-as Mary Vance said Henry Warren did. It&rsquo;s all very fine for you to laugh,
-Jerry Meredith, but you&rsquo;d have laughed on the other side of your mouth if
-you&rsquo;d been there. And how are we to be punished? <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t
-think it&rsquo;s fair, but let&rsquo;s know what we have to do, Judge
-Meredith!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The way I look at it,&rdquo; said Jerry, frowning, &ldquo;is that Carl
-was the most to blame. He bolted first, as I understand it. Besides, he was a
-boy, so he should have stood his ground to protect you girls, whatever the
-danger was. You know that, Carl, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose so,&rdquo; growled Carl shamefacedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very well. This is to be your punishment. To-night you&rsquo;ll sit on
-Mr. Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone in the graveyard alone, until twelve
-o&rsquo;clock.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl gave a little shudder. The graveyard was not so very far from the old
-Bailey garden. It would be a trying ordeal, but Carl was anxious to wipe out
-his disgrace and prove that he was not a coward after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; he said sturdily. &ldquo;But how&rsquo;ll I know when
-it is twelve?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The study windows are open and you&rsquo;ll hear the clock striking. And
-mind you that you are not to budge out of that graveyard until the last stroke.
-As for you girls, you&rsquo;ve got to go without jam at supper for a
-week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Una looked rather blank. They were inclined to think that even
-Carl&rsquo;s comparatively short though sharp agony was lighter punishment than
-this long drawn-out ordeal. A whole week of soggy bread without the saving
-grace of jam! But no shirking was permitted in the club. The girls accepted
-their lot with such philosophy as they could summon up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That night they all went to bed at nine, except Carl, who was already keeping
-vigil on the tombstone. Una slipped in to bid him good night. Her tender heart
-was wrung with sympathy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Carl, are you much scared?&rdquo; she whispered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not a bit,&rdquo; said Carl airily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t sleep a wink till after twelve,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;If
-you get lonesome just look up at our window and remember that I&rsquo;m inside,
-awake, and thinking about you. That will be a little company, won&rsquo;t
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be all right. Don&rsquo;t you worry about me,&rdquo; said
-Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But in spite of his dauntless words Carl was a pretty lonely boy when the
-lights went out in the manse. He had hoped his father would be in the study as
-he so often was. He would not feel alone then. But that night Mr. Meredith had
-been summoned to the fishing village at the harbour mouth to see a dying man.
-He would not likely be back until after midnight. Carl must dree his weird
-alone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A Glen man went past carrying a lantern. The mysterious shadows caused by the
-lantern-light went hurtling madly over the graveyard like a dance of demons or
-witches. Then they passed and darkness fell again. One by one the lights in the
-Glen went out. It was a very dark night, with a cloudy sky, and a raw east wind
-that was cold in spite of the calendar. Far away on the horizon was the low dim
-lustre of the Charlottetown lights. The wind wailed and sighed in the old
-fir-trees. Mr. Alec Davis&rsquo; tall monument gleamed whitely through the
-gloom. The willow beside it tossed long, writhing arms spectrally. At times,
-the gyrations of its boughs made it seem as if the monument were moving, too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl curled himself up on the tombstone with his legs tucked under him. It
-wasn&rsquo;t precisely pleasant to hang them over the edge of the stone. Just
-suppose&mdash;just suppose&mdash;bony hands should reach up out of Mr.
-Pollock&rsquo;s grave under it and clutch him by the ankles. That had been one
-of Mary Vance&rsquo;s cheerful speculations one time when they had all been
-sitting there. It returned to haunt Carl now. He didn&rsquo;t believe those
-things; he didn&rsquo;t even really believe in Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost. As
-for Mr. Pollock, he had been dead sixty years, so it wasn&rsquo;t likely he
-cared who sat on his tombstone now. But there is something very strange and
-terrible in being awake when all the rest of the world is asleep. You are alone
-then with nothing but your own feeble personality to pit against the mighty
-principalities and powers of darkness. Carl was only ten and the dead were all
-around him&mdash;and he wished, oh, he wished that the clock would strike
-twelve. Would it <i>never</i> strike twelve? Surely Aunt Martha must have forgotten to
-wind it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then it struck eleven&mdash;only eleven! He must stay yet another hour in
-that grim place. If only there were a few friendly stars to be seen! The
-darkness was so thick it seemed to press against his face. There was a sound as
-of stealthy passing footsteps all over the graveyard. Carl shivered, partly
-with prickling terror, partly with real cold.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then it began to rain&mdash;a chill, penetrating drizzle. Carl&rsquo;s thin
-little cotton blouse and shirt were soon wet through. He felt chilled to the
-bone. He forgot mental terrors in his physical discomfort. But he must stay
-there till twelve&mdash;he was punishing himself and he was on his honour.
-Nothing had been said about rain&mdash;but it did not make any difference. When
-the study clock finally struck twelve a drenched little figure crept stiffly
-down off Mr. Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, made its way into the manse and
-upstairs to bed. Carl&rsquo;s teeth were chattering. He thought he would never
-get warm again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was warm enough when morning came. Jerry gave one startled look at his
-crimson face and then rushed to call his father. Mr. Meredith came hurriedly,
-his own face ivory white from the pallor of his long night vigil by a death
-bed. He had not got home until daylight. He bent over his little lad anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Carl, are you sick?&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&mdash;tombstone&mdash;over here,&rdquo; said Carl,
-&ldquo;it&rsquo;s&mdash;moving&mdash;about&mdash;it&rsquo;s
-coming&mdash;at&mdash;me&mdash;keep it&mdash;away&mdash;please.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith rushed to the telephone. In ten minutes Dr. Blythe was at the
-manse. Half an hour later a wire was sent to town for a trained nurse, and all
-the Glen knew that Carl Meredith was very ill with pneumonia and that Dr.
-Blythe had been seen to shake his head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Gilbert shook his head more than once in the fortnight that followed. Carl
-developed double pneumonia. There was one night when Mr. Meredith paced his
-study floor, and Faith and Una huddled in their bedroom and cried, and Jerry,
-wild with remorse, refused to budge from the floor of the hall outside
-Carl&rsquo;s door. Dr. Blythe and the nurse never left the bedside. They fought
-death gallantly until the red dawn and they won the victory. Carl rallied and
-passed the crisis in safety. The news was phoned about the waiting Glen and
-people found out how much they really loved their minister and his children.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t had one decent night&rsquo;s sleep since I heard the
-child was sick,&rdquo; Miss Cornelia told Anne, &ldquo;and Mary Vance has cried
-until those queer eyes of hers looked like burnt holes in a blanket. Is it true
-that Carl got pneumonia from straying out in the graveyard that wet night for a
-dare?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. He was staying there to punish himself for cowardice in that affair
-of the Warren ghost. It seems they have a club for bringing themselves up, and
-they punish themselves when they do wrong. Jerry told Mr. Meredith all about
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor little souls,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl got better rapidly, for the congregation took enough nourishing things to
-the manse to furnish forth a hospital. Norman Douglas drove up every evening
-with a dozen fresh eggs and a jar of Jersey cream. Sometimes he stayed an hour
-and bellowed arguments on predestination with Mr. Meredith in the study;
-oftener he drove on up to the hill that overlooked the Glen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Carl was able to go again to Rainbow Valley they had a special feast in
-his honour and the doctor came down and helped them with the fireworks. Mary
-Vance was there, too, but she did not tell any ghost stories. Miss Cornelia had
-given her a talking on that subject which Mary would not forget in a hurry.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap32"></a>CHAPTER XXXII.<br />
-TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West, on her way home from a music lesson at Ingleside, turned aside
-to the hidden spring in Rainbow Valley. She had not been there all summer; the
-beautiful little spot had no longer any allurement for her. The spirit of her
-young lover never came to the tryst now; and the memories connected with John
-Meredith were too painful and poignant. But she had happened to glance backward
-up the valley and had seen Norman Douglas vaulting as airily as a stripling
-over the old stone dyke of the Bailey garden and thought he was on his way up
-the hill. If he overtook her she would have to walk home with him and she was
-not going to do that. So she slipped at once behind the maples of the spring,
-hoping he had not seen her and would pass on.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Norman had seen her and, what was more, was in pursuit of her. He had been
-wanting for some time to have talk with Rosemary, but she had always, so it
-seemed, avoided him. Rosemary had never, at any time, liked Norman Douglas very
-well. His bluster, his temper, his noisy hilarity, had always antagonized her.
-Long ago she had often wondered how Ellen could possibly be attracted to him.
-Norman Douglas was perfectly aware of her dislike and he chuckled over it. It
-never worried Norman if people did not like him. It did not even make him
-dislike them in return, for he took it as a kind of extorted compliment. He
-thought Rosemary a fine girl, and he meant to be an excellent, generous
-brother-in-law to her. But before he could be her brother-in-law he had to have
-a talk with her, so, having seen her leaving Ingleside as he stood in the
-doorway of a Glen store, he had straightway plunged into the valley to overtake
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was sitting pensively on the maple seat where John Meredith had been
-sitting on that evening nearly a year ago. The tiny spring shimmered and
-dimpled under its fringe of ferns. Ruby-red gleams of sunset fell through the
-arching boughs. A tall clump of perfect asters grew at her side. The little
-spot was as dreamy and witching and evasive as any retreat of fairies and
-dryads in ancient forests. Into it Norman Douglas bounced, scattering and
-annihilating its charm in a moment. His personality seemed to swallow the place
-up. There was simply nothing there but Norman Douglas, big, red-bearded,
-complacent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good evening,&rdquo; said Rosemary coldly, standing up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Evening, girl. Sit down again&mdash;sit down again. I want to
-have a talk with you. Bless the girl, what&rsquo;s she looking at me like that
-for? I don&rsquo;t want to eat you&mdash;I&rsquo;ve had my supper. Sit down and
-be civil.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can hear what you have to say quite as well here,&rdquo; said
-Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you can, girl, if you use your ears. I only wanted you to be
-comfortable. You look so durned uncomfortable, standing there. Well, <i>I&rsquo;ll</i>
-sit anyway.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman accordingly sat down in the very place John Meredith had once sat. The
-contrast was so ludicrous that Rosemary was afraid she would go off into a peal
-of hysterical laughter over it. Norman cast his hat aside, placed his huge, red
-hands on his knees, and looked up at her with his eyes a-twinkle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, girl, don&rsquo;t be so stiff,&rdquo; he said, ingratiatingly.
-When he liked he could be very ingratiating. &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s have a
-reasonable, sensible, friendly chat. There&rsquo;s something I want to ask you.
-Ellen says she won&rsquo;t, so it&rsquo;s up to me to do it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary looked down at the spring, which seemed to have shrunk to the size of
-a dewdrop. Norman gazed at her in despair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Durn it all, you might help a fellow out a bit,&rdquo; he burst forth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it you want me to help you say?&rdquo; asked Rosemary
-scornfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know as well as I do, girl. Don&rsquo;t be putting on your tragedy
-airs. No wonder Ellen was scared to ask you. Look here, girl, Ellen and I want
-to marry each other. That&rsquo;s plain English, isn&rsquo;t it? Got that? And
-Ellen says she can&rsquo;t unless you give her back some tom-fool promise she
-made. Come now, will you do it? Will you do it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman bounced up and seized her reluctant hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! I knew you would&mdash;I told Ellen you would. I knew it would
-only take a minute. Now, girl, you go home and tell Ellen, and we&rsquo;ll have
-a wedding in a fortnight and you&rsquo;ll come and live with us. We
-shan&rsquo;t leave you to roost on that hill-top like a lonely
-crow&mdash;don&rsquo;t you worry. I know you hate me, but, Lord, it&rsquo;ll be
-great fun living with some one that hates me. Life&rsquo;ll have some spice in
-it after this. Ellen will roast me and you&rsquo;ll freeze me. I won&rsquo;t
-have a dull moment.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary did not condescend to tell him that nothing would ever induce her to
-live in his house. She let him go striding back to the Glen, oozing delight and
-complacency, and she walked slowly up the hill home. She had known this was
-coming ever since she had returned from Kingsport, and found Norman Douglas
-established as a frequent evening caller. His name was never mentioned between
-her and Ellen, but the very avoidance of it was significant. It was not in
-Rosemary&rsquo;s nature to feel bitter, or she would have felt very bitter. She
-was coldly civil to Norman, and she made no difference in any way with Ellen.
-But Ellen had not found much comfort in her second courtship.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was in the garden, attended by St. George, when Rosemary came home. The two
-sisters met in the dahlia walk. St. George sat down on the gravel walk between
-them and folded his glossy black tail gracefully around his white paws, with
-all the indifference of a well-fed, well-bred, well-groomed cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you ever see such dahlias?&rdquo; demanded Ellen proudly.
-&ldquo;They are just the finest we&rsquo;ve ever had.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary had never cared for dahlias. Their presence in the garden was her
-concession to Ellen&rsquo;s taste. She noticed one huge mottled one of crimson
-and yellow that lorded it over all the others.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That dahlia,&rdquo; she said, pointing to it, &ldquo;is exactly like
-Norman Douglas. It might easily be his twin brother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s dark-browed face flushed. She admired the dahlia in question, but
-she knew Rosemary did not, and that no compliment was intended. But she dared
-not resent Rosemary&rsquo;s speech&mdash;poor Ellen dared not resent anything
-just then. And it was the first time Rosemary had ever mentioned Norman&rsquo;s
-name to her. She felt that this portended something.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I met Norman Douglas in the valley,&rdquo; said Rosemary, looking
-straight at her sister, &ldquo;and he told me you and he wanted to be
-married&mdash;if I would give you permission.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes? What did you say?&rdquo; asked Ellen, trying to speak naturally and
-off-handedly, and failing completely. She could not meet Rosemary&rsquo;s eyes.
-She looked down at St. George&rsquo;s sleek back and felt horribly afraid.
-Rosemary had either said she would or she wouldn&rsquo;t. If she would Ellen
-would feel so ashamed and remorseful that she would be a very uncomfortable
-bride-elect; and if she wouldn&rsquo;t&mdash;well, Ellen had once learned to
-live without Norman Douglas, but she had forgotten the lesson and felt that she
-could never learn it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said that as far as I was concerned you were at full liberty to marry
-each other as soon as you liked,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Ellen, still looking at St. George.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary&rsquo;s face softened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope you&rsquo;ll be happy, Ellen,&rdquo; she said gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Rosemary,&rdquo; Ellen looked up in distress, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so
-ashamed&mdash;I don&rsquo;t deserve it&mdash;after all I said to
-you&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t speak about that,&rdquo; said Rosemary hurriedly and
-decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But&mdash;but,&rdquo; persisted Ellen, &ldquo;you are free now,
-too&mdash;and it&rsquo;s not too late&mdash;John Meredith&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen West!&rdquo; Rosemary had a little spark of temper under all her
-sweetness and it flashed forth now in her blue eyes. &ldquo;Have you quite lost
-your senses in <i>every</i> respect? Do you suppose for an instant that <i>I</i> am
-going to go to John Meredith and say meekly, &lsquo;Please, sir, I&rsquo;ve
-changed my mind and please, sir, I hope you haven&rsquo;t changed yours.&rsquo;
-Is that what you want me to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;no&mdash;but a little&mdash;encouragement&mdash;he would come
-back&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never. He despises me&mdash;and rightly. No more of this, Ellen. I bear
-you no grudge&mdash;marry whom you like. But no meddling in my affairs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you must come and live with me,&rdquo; said Ellen. &ldquo;I shall
-not leave you here alone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think that I would go and live in Norman Douglas&rsquo;s
-house?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; cried Ellen, half angrily, despite her humiliation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary began to laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, I thought you had a sense of humour. Can you see me doing
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see why you wouldn&rsquo;t. His house is big
-enough&mdash;you&rsquo;d have your share of it to yourself&mdash;he
-wouldn&rsquo;t interfere.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, the thing is not to be thought of. Don&rsquo;t bring this up
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then,&rdquo; said Ellen coldly, and determinedly, &ldquo;I shall not
-marry him. I shall not leave you here alone. That is all there is to be said
-about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is not nonsense. It is my firm decision. It would be absurd for you
-to think of living here by yourself&mdash;a mile from any other house. If you
-won&rsquo;t come with me I&rsquo;ll stay with you. Now, we won&rsquo;t argue
-the matter, so don&rsquo;t try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall leave Norman to do the arguing,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;ll</i> deal with Norman. I can manage <i>him</i>. I would never have asked
-you to give me back my promise&mdash;never&mdash;but I had to tell Norman why I
-couldn&rsquo;t marry him and he said <i>he</i> would ask you. I couldn&rsquo;t prevent
-him. You need not suppose you are the only person in the world who possesses
-self-respect. I never dreamed of marrying and leaving you here alone. And
-you&rsquo;ll find I can be as determined as yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary turned away and went into the house, with a shrug of her shoulders.
-Ellen looked down at St. George, who had never blinked an eyelash or stirred a
-whisker during the whole interview.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;St. George, this world would be a dull place without the men, I&rsquo;ll
-admit, but I&rsquo;m almost tempted to wish there wasn&rsquo;t one of &lsquo;em
-in it. Look at the trouble and bother they&rsquo;ve made right here,
-George&mdash;torn our happy old life completely up by the roots, Saint. John
-Meredith began it and Norman Douglas has finished it. And now both of them have
-to go into limbo. Norman is the only man I ever met who agrees with me that the
-Kaiser of Germany is the most dangerous creature alive on this earth&mdash;and
-I can&rsquo;t marry this sensible person because my sister is stubborn and
-I&rsquo;m stubborner. Mark my words, St. George, the minister would come back
-if she raised her little finger. But she won&rsquo;t George&mdash;she&rsquo;ll
-never do it&mdash;she won&rsquo;t even crook it&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t dare
-meddle, Saint. I won&rsquo;t sulk, George; Rosemary didn&rsquo;t sulk, so
-I&rsquo;m determined I won&rsquo;t either, Saint; Norman will tear up the turf,
-but the long and short of it is, St. George, that all of us old fools must just
-stop thinking of marrying. Well, well, &lsquo;despair is a free man, hope is a
-slave,&rsquo; Saint. So now come into the house, George, and I&rsquo;ll solace
-you with a saucerful of cream. Then there will be one happy and contented
-creature on this hill at least.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap33"></a>CHAPTER XXXIII.<br />
-CARL IS&mdash;NOT&mdash;WHIPPED</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is something I think I ought to tell you,&rdquo; said Mary Vance
-mysteriously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She and Faith and Una were walking arm in arm through the village, having
-foregathered at Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s store. Una and Faith exchanged looks which
-said, &ldquo;<i>Now</i> something disagreeable is coming.&rdquo; When Mary Vance
-thought she ought to tell them things there was seldom much pleasure in the
-hearing. They often wondered why they kept on liking Mary Vance&mdash;for like
-her they did, in spite of everything. To be sure, she was generally a
-stimulating and agreeable companion. If only she would not have those
-convictions that it was her duty to tell them things!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know that Rosemary West won&rsquo;t marry your pa because she
-thinks you are such a wild lot? She&rsquo;s afraid she couldn&rsquo;t bring you
-up right and so she turned him down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s heart thrilled with secret exultation. She was very glad to hear
-that Miss West would not marry her father. But Faith was rather disappointed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you know?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, everybody&rsquo;s saying it. I heard Mrs. Elliott talking it over
-with Mrs. Doctor. They thought I was too far away to hear, but I&rsquo;ve got
-ears like a cat&rsquo;s. Mrs. Elliott said she hadn&rsquo;t a doubt that
-Rosemary was afraid to try stepmothering you because you&rsquo;d got such a
-reputation. Your pa never goes up the hill now. Neither does Norman Douglas.
-Folks say Ellen has jilted him just to get square with him for jilting her ages
-ago. But Norman is going about declaring he&rsquo;ll get her yet. And I think
-you ought to know you&rsquo;ve spoiled your pa&rsquo;s match and <i>I</i> think
-it&rsquo;s a pity, for he&rsquo;s bound to marry somebody before long, and
-Rosemary West would have been the best wife <i>I</i> know of for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You told me all stepmothers were cruel and wicked,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;well,&rdquo; said Mary rather confusedly, &ldquo;they&rsquo;re
-mostly awful cranky, I know. But Rosemary West couldn&rsquo;t be very mean to
-any one. I tell you if your pa turns round and marries Emmeline Drew
-you&rsquo;ll wish you&rsquo;d behaved yourselves better and not frightened
-Rosemary out of it. It&rsquo;s awful that you&rsquo;ve got such a reputation
-that no decent woman&rsquo;ll marry your pa on account of you. Of course,
-<i>I</i> know that half the yarns that are told about you ain&rsquo;t true. But
-give a dog a bad name. Why, some folks are saying that it was Jerry and Carl
-that threw the stones through Mrs. Stimson&rsquo;s window the other night when
-it was really them two Boyd boys. But I&rsquo;m afraid it was Carl that put the
-eel in old Mrs. Carr&rsquo;s buggy, though I said at first I wouldn&rsquo;t
-believe it until I&rsquo;d better proof than old Kitty Alec&rsquo;s word. I
-told Mrs. Elliott so right to her face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did Carl do?&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, they say&mdash;now, mind, I&rsquo;m only telling you what people
-say&mdash;so there&rsquo;s no use in your blaming me for it&mdash;that Carl and
-a lot of other boys were fishing eels over the bridge one evening last week.
-Mrs. Carr drove past in that old rattletrap buggy of hers with the open back.
-And Carl he just up and threw a big eel into the back. When poor old Mrs. Carr
-was driving up the hill by Ingleside that eel came squirming out between her
-feet. She thought it was a snake and she just give one awful screech and stood
-up and jumped clean over the wheels. The horse bolted, but it went home and no
-damage was done. But Mrs. Carr jarred her legs most terrible, and has had
-nervous spasms ever since whenever she thinks of the eel. Say, it was a rotten
-trick to play on the poor old soul. She&rsquo;s a decent body, if she is as
-queer as Dick&rsquo;s hat band.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Una looked at each other again. This was a matter for the
-Good-Conduct Club. They would not talk it over with Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There goes your pa,&rdquo; said Mary as Mr. Meredith passed them,
-&ldquo;and never seeing us no more&rsquo;n if we weren&rsquo;t here. Well,
-I&rsquo;m getting so&rsquo;s I don&rsquo;t mind it. But there are folks who
-do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith had not seen them, but he was not walking along in his usual
-dreamy and abstracted fashion. He strode up the hill in agitation and distress.
-Mrs. Alec Davis had just told him the story of Carl and the eel. She had been
-very indignant about it. Old Mrs. Carr was her third cousin. Mr. Meredith was
-more than indignant. He was hurt and shocked. He had not thought Carl would do
-anything like this. He was not inclined to be hard on pranks of heedlessness or
-forgetfulness, but <i>this</i> was different. <i>This</i> had a nasty tang in it. When he
-reached home he found Carl on the lawn, patiently studying the habits and
-customs of a colony of wasps. Calling him into the study Mr. Meredith
-confronted him, with a sterner face than any of his children had ever seen
-before, and asked him if the story were true.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carl, flushing, but meeting his father&rsquo;s eyes
-bravely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith groaned. He had hoped that there had been at least exaggeration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell me the whole matter,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The boys were fishing for eels over the bridge,&rdquo; said Carl.
-&ldquo;Link Drew had caught a whopper&mdash;I mean an awful big one&mdash;the
-biggest eel I ever saw. He caught it right at the start and it had been lying
-in his basket a long time, still as still. I thought it was dead, honest I did.
-Then old Mrs. Carr drove over the bridge and she called us all young varmints
-and told us to go home. And we hadn&rsquo;t said a word to her, father, truly.
-So when she drove back again, after going to the store, the boys dared me to
-put Link&rsquo;s eel in her buggy. I thought it was so dead it couldn&rsquo;t
-hurt her and I threw it in. Then the eel came to life on the hill and we heard
-her scream and saw her jump out. I was awful sorry. That&rsquo;s all,
-father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was not quite as bad as Mr. Meredith had feared, but it was quite bad
-enough. &ldquo;I must punish you, Carl,&rdquo; he said sorrowfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I know, father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I must whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl winced. He had never been whipped. Then, seeing how badly his father felt,
-he said cheerfully,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith misunderstood his cheerfulness and thought him insensible. He told
-Carl to come to the study after supper, and when the boy had gone out he flung
-himself into his chair and groaned again. He dreaded the evening sevenfold more
-than Carl did. The poor minister did not even know what he should whip his boy
-with. What was used to whip boys? Rods? Canes? No, that would be too brutal. A
-timber switch, then? And he, John Meredith, must hie him to the woods and cut
-one. It was an abominable thought. Then a picture presented itself unbidden to
-his mind. He saw Mrs. Carr&rsquo;s wizened, nut-cracker little face at the
-appearance of that reviving eel&mdash;he saw her sailing witch-like over the
-buggy wheels. Before he could prevent himself the minister laughed. Then he was
-angry with himself and angrier still with Carl. He would get that switch at
-once&mdash;and it must not be too limber, after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl was talking the matter over in the graveyard with Faith and Una, who had
-just come home. They were horrified at the idea of his being whipped&mdash;and
-by father, who had never done such a thing! But they agreed soberly that it was
-just.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know it was a dreadful thing to do,&rdquo; sighed Faith. &ldquo;And
-you never owned up in the club.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I forgot,&rdquo; said Carl. &ldquo;Besides, I didn&rsquo;t think any
-harm came of it. I didn&rsquo;t know she jarred her legs. But I&rsquo;m to be
-whipped and that will make things square.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will it hurt&mdash;very much?&rdquo; said Una, slipping her hand into
-Carl&rsquo;s.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, not so much, I guess,&rdquo; said Carl gamely. &ldquo;Anyhow,
-I&rsquo;m not going to cry, no matter how much it hurts. It would make father
-feel so bad, if I did. He&rsquo;s all cut up now. I wish I could whip myself
-hard enough and save him doing it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After supper, at which Carl had eaten little and Mr. Meredith nothing at all,
-both went silently into the study. The switch lay on the table. Mr. Meredith
-had had a bad time getting a switch to suit him. He cut one, then felt it was
-too slender. Carl had done a really indefensible thing. Then he cut
-another&mdash;it was far too thick. After all, Carl had thought the eel was
-dead. The third one suited him better; but as he picked it up from the table it
-seemed very thick and heavy&mdash;more like a stick than a switch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hold out your hand,&rdquo; he said to Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl threw back his head and held out his hand unflinchingly. But he was not
-very old and he could not quite keep a little fear out of his eyes. Mr.
-Meredith looked down into those eyes&mdash;why, they were Cecilia&rsquo;s
-eyes&mdash;her very eyes&mdash;and in them was the selfsame expression he had
-once seen in Cecilia&rsquo;s eyes when she had come to him to tell him
-something she had been a little afraid to tell him. Here were her eyes in
-Carl&rsquo;s little, white face&mdash;and six weeks ago he had thought, through
-one endless, terrible night, that his little lad was dying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith threw down the switch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I cannot whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl fled to the graveyard, feeling that the look on his father&rsquo;s face
-was worse than any whipping.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is it over so soon?&rdquo; asked Faith. She and Una had been holding
-hands and setting teeth on the Pollock tombstone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&mdash;he didn&rsquo;t whip me at all,&rdquo; said Carl with a sob,
-&ldquo;and&mdash;I wish he had&mdash;and he&rsquo;s in there, feeling just
-awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una slipped away. Her heart yearned to comfort her father. As noiselessly as a
-little gray mouse she opened the study door and crept in. The room was dark
-with twilight. Her father was sitting at his desk. His back was towards
-her&mdash;his head was in his hands. He was talking to himself&mdash;broken,
-anguished words&mdash;but Una heard&mdash;heard and understood, with the sudden
-illumination that comes to sensitive, unmothered children. As silently as she
-had come in she slipped out and closed the door. John Meredith went on talking
-out his pain in what he deemed his undisturbed solitude.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap34"></a>CHAPTER XXXIV.<br />
-UNA VISITS THE HILL</h2>
-
-<p>
-Una went upstairs. Carl and Faith were already on their way through the early
-moonlight to Rainbow Valley, having heard therefrom the elfin lilt of
-Jerry&rsquo;s jews-harp and having guessed that the Blythes were there and fun
-afoot. Una had no wish to go. She sought her own room first where she sat down
-on her bed and had a little cry. She did not want anybody to come in her dear
-mother&rsquo;s place. She did not want a stepmother who would hate her and make
-her father hate her. But father was so desperately unhappy&mdash;and if she
-could do any anything to make him happier she <i>must</i> do it. There was only one
-thing she could do&mdash;and she had known the moment she had left the study
-that she must do it. But it was a very hard thing to do.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After Una cried her heart out she wiped her eyes and went to the spare room. It
-was dark and rather musty, for the blind had not been drawn up nor the window
-opened for a long time. Aunt Martha was no fresh-air fiend. But as nobody ever
-thought of shutting a door in the manse this did not matter so much, save when
-some unfortunate minister came to stay all night and was compelled to breathe
-the spare room atmosphere.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a closet in the spare room and far back in the closet a gray silk
-dress was hanging. Una went into the closet and shut the door, went down on her
-knees and pressed her face against the soft silken folds. It had been her
-mother&rsquo;s wedding-dress. It was still full of a sweet, faint, haunting
-perfume, like lingering love. Una always felt very close to her mother
-there&mdash;as if she were kneeling at her feet with head in her lap. She went
-there once in a long while when life was <i>too</i> hard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mother,&rdquo; she whispered to the gray silk gown, &ldquo;<i>I</i> will
-never forget you, mother, and I&rsquo;ll <i>always</i> love you best. But I have to do
-it, mother, because father is so very unhappy. I know you wouldn&rsquo;t want
-him to be unhappy. And I will be very good to her, mother, and try to love her,
-even if she is like Mary Vance said stepmothers always were.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una carried some fine, spiritual strength away from her secret shrine. She
-slept peacefully that night with the tear stains still glistening on her sweet,
-serious, little face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The next afternoon she put on her best dress and hat. They were shabby enough.
-Every other little girl in the Glen had new clothes that summer except Faith
-and Una. Mary Vance had a lovely dress of white embroidered lawn, with scarlet
-silk sash and shoulder bows. But to-day Una did not mind her shabbiness. She
-only wanted to be very neat. She washed her face carefully. She brushed her
-black hair until it was as smooth as satin. She tied her shoelaces carefully,
-having first sewed up two runs in her one pair of good stockings. She would
-have liked to black her shoes, but she could not find any blacking. Finally,
-she slipped away from the manse, down through Rainbow Valley, up through the
-whispering woods, and out to the road that ran past the house on the hill. It
-was quite a long walk and Una was tired and warm when she got there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw Rosemary West sitting under a tree in the garden and stole past the
-dahlia beds to her. Rosemary had a book in her lap, but she was gazing afar
-across the harbour and her thoughts were sorrowful enough. Life had not been
-pleasant lately in the house on the hill. Ellen had not sulked&mdash;Ellen had
-been a brick. But things can be felt that are never said and at times the
-silence between the two women was intolerably eloquent. All the many familiar
-things that had once made life sweet had a flavour of bitterness now. Norman
-Douglas made periodical irruptions also, bullying and coaxing Ellen by turns.
-It would end, Rosemary believed, by his dragging Ellen off with him some day,
-and Rosemary felt that she would be almost glad when it happened. Existence
-would be horribly lonely then, but it would be no longer charged with dynamite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was roused from her unpleasant reverie by a timid little touch on her
-shoulder. Turning, she saw Una Meredith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Una, dear, did you walk up here in all this heat?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Una, &ldquo;I came to&mdash;I came to&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she found it very hard to say what she had come to do. Her voice
-failed&mdash;her eyes filled with tears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Una, little girl, what is the trouble? Don&rsquo;t be afraid to
-tell me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary put her arm around the thin little form and drew the child close to
-her. Her eyes were very beautiful&mdash;her touch so tender that Una found
-courage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I came&mdash;to ask you&mdash;to marry father,&rdquo; she gasped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was silent for a moment from sheer dumbfounderment. She stared at Una
-blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t be angry, please, dear Miss West,&rdquo; said Una,
-pleadingly. &ldquo;You see, everybody is saying that you wouldn&rsquo;t marry
-father because we are so bad. He is <i>very</i> unhappy about it. So I thought I would
-come and tell you that we are never bad <i>on purpose</i>. And if you will only marry
-father we will all try to be good and do just what you tell us. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i>
-you won&rsquo;t have any trouble with us. <i>Please</i>, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary had been thinking rapidly. Gossiping surmise, she saw, had put this
-mistaken idea into Una&rsquo;s mind. She must be perfectly frank and sincere
-with the child.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una, dear,&rdquo; she said softly. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t because of you
-poor little souls that I cannot be your father&rsquo;s wife. I never thought of
-such a thing. You are not bad&mdash;I never supposed you were.
-There&mdash;there was another reason altogether, Una.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you like father?&rdquo; asked Una, lifting reproachful eyes.
-&ldquo;Oh, Miss West, you don&rsquo;t know how nice he is. I&rsquo;m sure
-he&rsquo;d make you a <i>good</i> husband.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Even in the midst of her perplexity and distress Rosemary couldn&rsquo;t help a
-twisted, little smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t laugh, Miss West,&rdquo; Una cried passionately.
-&ldquo;Father feels <i>dreadful</i> about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you&rsquo;re mistaken, dear,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i> I&rsquo;m not. Oh, Miss West, father was
-going to whip Carl yesterday&mdash;Carl had been naughty&mdash;and father
-couldn&rsquo;t do it because you see he had no <i>practice</i> in whipping. So when
-Carl came out and told us father felt so bad, I slipped into the study to see
-if I could help him&mdash;he <i>likes</i> me to comfort him, Miss West&mdash;and he
-didn&rsquo;t hear me come in and I heard what he was saying. I&rsquo;ll tell
-you, Miss West, if you&rsquo;ll let me whisper it in your ear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una whispered earnestly. Rosemary&rsquo;s face turned crimson. So John Meredith
-still cared. <i>He</i> hadn&rsquo;t changed his mind. And he must care intensely if he
-had said that&mdash;care more than she had ever supposed he did. She sat still
-for a moment, stroking Una&rsquo;s hair. Then she said,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you take a little letter from me to your father, Una?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, are you going to marry him, Miss West?&rdquo; asked Una eagerly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps&mdash;if he really wants me to,&rdquo; said Rosemary, blushing
-again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad&mdash;I&rsquo;m glad,&rdquo; said Una bravely. Then she
-looked up, with quivering lips. &ldquo;Oh, Miss West, you won&rsquo;t turn
-father against us&mdash;you won&rsquo;t make him hate us, will you?&rdquo; she
-said beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary stared again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una Meredith! Do you think I would do such a thing? Whatever put such an
-idea into your head?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary Vance said stepmothers were all like that&mdash;and that they all
-hated their stepchildren and made their father hate them&mdash;she said they
-just couldn&rsquo;t help it&mdash;just being stepmothers made them like
-that&rdquo;&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You poor child! And yet you came up here and asked me to marry your
-father because you wanted to make him happy? You&rsquo;re a darling&mdash;a
-heroine&mdash;as Ellen would say, you&rsquo;re a brick. Now listen to me, very
-closely, dearest. Mary Vance is a silly little girl who doesn&rsquo;t know very
-much and she is dreadfully mistaken about some things. I would never dream of
-trying to turn your father against you. I would love you all dearly. I
-don&rsquo;t want to take your own mother&rsquo;s place&mdash;she must always
-have that in your hearts. But neither have I any intention of being a
-stepmother. I want to be your friend and helper and <i>chum</i>. Don&rsquo;t you think
-that would be nice, Una&mdash;if you and Faith and Carl and Jerry could just
-think of me as a good jolly chum&mdash;a big older sister?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it would be lovely,&rdquo; cried Una, with a transfigured face. She
-flung her arms impulsively round Rosemary&rsquo;s neck. She was so happy that
-she felt as if she could fly on wings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do the others&mdash;do Faith and the boys have the same idea you had
-about stepmothers?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Faith never believed Mary Vance. I was dreadfully foolish to believe
-her, either. Faith loves you already&mdash;she has loved you ever since poor
-Adam was eaten. And Jerry and Carl will think it is jolly. Oh, Miss West, when
-you come to live with us, will you&mdash;could you&mdash;teach me to
-cook&mdash;a little&mdash;and sew&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;and do things? I
-don&rsquo;t know anything. I won&rsquo;t be much trouble&mdash;I&rsquo;ll try
-to learn fast.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Darling, I&rsquo;ll teach you and help you all I can. Now, you
-won&rsquo;t say a word to anybody about this, will you&mdash;not even to Faith,
-until your father himself tells you you may? And you&rsquo;ll stay and have tea
-with me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, thank you&mdash;but&mdash;but&mdash;I think I&rsquo;d rather go
-right back and take the letter to father,&rdquo; faltered Una. &ldquo;You see,
-he&rsquo;ll be glad that much <i>sooner</i>, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I see,&rdquo; said Rosemary. She went to the house, wrote a note and
-gave it to Una. When that small damsel had run off, a palpitating bundle of
-happiness, Rosemary went to Ellen, who was shelling peas on the back porch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;Una Meredith has just been here to ask me
-to marry her father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen looked up and read her sister&rsquo;s face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you&rsquo;re going to?&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s quite likely.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen went on shelling peas for a few minutes. Then she suddenly put her hands
-up to her own face. There were tears in her black-browed eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I hope we&rsquo;ll all be happy,&rdquo; she said between a sob
-and a laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Down at the manse Una Meredith, warm, rosy, triumphant, marched boldly into her
-father&rsquo;s study and laid a letter on the desk before him. His pale face
-flushed as he saw the clear, fine handwriting he knew so well. He opened the
-letter. It was very short&mdash;but he shed twenty years as he read it.
-Rosemary asked him if he could meet her that evening at sunset by the spring in
-Rainbow Valley.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap35"></a>CHAPTER XXXV.<br />
-&ldquo;LET THE PIPER COME&rdquo;</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;the double wedding is to be
-sometime about the middle of this month.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a faint chill in the air of the early September evening, so Anne had
-lighted her ever ready fire of driftwood in the big living room, and she and
-Miss Cornelia basked in its fairy flicker.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is so delightful&mdash;especially in regard to Mr. Meredith and
-Rosemary,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m as happy in the thought of it, as
-I was when I was getting married myself. I felt exactly like a bride again last
-evening when I was up on the hill seeing Rosemary&rsquo;s trousseau.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They tell me her things are fine enough for a princess,&rdquo; said
-Susan from a shadowy corner where she was cuddling her brown boy. &ldquo;I have
-been invited up to see them also and I intend to go some evening. I understand
-that Rosemary is to wear white silk and a veil, but Ellen is to be married in
-navy blue. I have no doubt, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that is very sensible of her,
-but for my own part I have always felt that if I were ever married <i>I</i>
-would prefer the white and the veil, as being more bride-like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A vision of Susan in &ldquo;white and a veil&rdquo; presented itself before
-Anne&rsquo;s inner vision and was almost too much for her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;As for Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;even his
-engagement has made a different man of him. He isn&rsquo;t half so dreamy and
-absent-minded, believe me. I was so relieved when I heard that he had decided
-to close the manse and let the children visit round while he was away on his
-honeymoon. If he had left them and old Aunt Martha there alone for a month I
-should have expected to wake every morning and see the place burned
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Aunt Martha and Jerry are coming here,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;Carl is
-going to Elder Clow&rsquo;s. I haven&rsquo;t heard where the girls are
-going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;m going to take them,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Of
-course, I was glad to, but Mary would have given me no peace till I asked them
-any way. The Ladies&rsquo; Aid is going to clean the manse from top to bottom
-before the bride and groom come back, and Norman Douglas has arranged to fill
-the cellar with vegetables. Nobody ever saw or heard anything quite like Norman
-Douglas these days, believe <i>me</i>. He&rsquo;s so tickled that he&rsquo;s going to
-marry Ellen West after wanting her all his life. If <i>I</i> was
-Ellen&mdash;but then, I&rsquo;m not, and if she is satisfied I can very well
-be. I heard her say years ago when she was a schoolgirl that she didn&rsquo;t
-want a tame puppy for a husband. There&rsquo;s nothing tame about Norman,
-believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The sun was setting over Rainbow Valley. The pond was wearing a wonderful
-tissue of purple and gold and green and crimson. A faint blue haze rested on
-the eastern hill, over which a great, pale, round moon was just floating up
-like a silver bubble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were all there, squatted in the little open glade&mdash;Faith and Una,
-Jerry and Carl, Jem and Walter, Nan and Di, and Mary Vance. They had been
-having a special celebration, for it would be Jem&rsquo;s last evening in
-Rainbow Valley. On the morrow he would leave for Charlottetown to attend
-Queen&rsquo;s Academy. Their charmed circle would be broken; and, in spite of
-the jollity of their little festival, there was a hint of sorrow in every gay
-young heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See&mdash;there is a great golden palace over there in the
-sunset,&rdquo; said Walter, pointing. &ldquo;Look at the shining
-tower&mdash;and the crimson banners streaming from them. Perhaps a conqueror is
-riding home from battle&mdash;and they are hanging them out to do honour to
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wish we had the old days back again,&rdquo; exclaimed Jem.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d love to be a soldier&mdash;a great, triumphant general.
-I&rsquo;d give <i>everything</i> to see a big battle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Well, Jem was to be a soldier and see a greater battle than had ever been
-fought in the world; but that was as yet far in the future; and the mother,
-whose first-born son he was, was wont to look on her boys and thank God that
-the &ldquo;brave days of old,&rdquo; which Jem longed for, were gone for ever,
-and that never would it be necessary for the sons of Canada to ride forth to
-battle &ldquo;for the ashes of their fathers and the temples of their
-gods.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The shadow of the Great Conflict had not yet made felt any forerunner of its
-chill. The lads who were to fight, and perhaps fall, on the fields of France
-and Flanders, Gallipoli and Palestine, were still roguish schoolboys with a
-fair life in prospect before them: the girls whose hearts were to be wrung were
-yet fair little maidens a-star with hopes and dreams.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slowly the banners of the sunset city gave up their crimson and gold; slowly
-the conqueror&rsquo;s pageant faded out. Twilight crept over the valley and the
-little group grew silent. Walter had been reading again that day in his beloved
-book of myths and he remembered how he had once fancied the Pied Piper coming
-down the valley on an evening just like this.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He began to speak dreamily, partly because he wanted to thrill his companions a
-little, partly because something apart from him seemed to be speaking through
-his lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Piper is coming nearer,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;he is nearer than he
-was that evening I saw him before. His long, shadowy cloak is blowing around
-him. He pipes&mdash;he pipes&mdash;and we must follow&mdash;Jem and Carl and
-Jerry and I&mdash;round and round the world.
-Listen&mdash;listen&mdash;can&rsquo;t you hear his wild music?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know you&rsquo;re only pretending,&rdquo; protested Mary Vance,
-&ldquo;and I wish you wouldn&rsquo;t. You make it too real. I hate that old
-Piper of yours.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Jem sprang up with a gay laugh. He stood up on a little hillock, tall and
-splendid, with his open brow and his fearless eyes. There were thousands like
-him all over the land of the maple.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let the Piper come and welcome,&rdquo; he cried, waving his hand.
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;ll</i> follow him gladly round and round the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<h3>THE END</h3>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div style='display:block;margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This file should be named 5343-h.htm or 5343-h.zip</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in https://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/4/5343/</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</body>
-
-</html>
-
-
diff --git a/5343-h/images/cover.jpg~ b/5343-h/images/cover.jpg~
deleted file mode 100644
index d5fece5..0000000
--- a/5343-h/images/cover.jpg~
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ